Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    THE LOST PRINCE 
Francis Hodgson Burnett 
CONTENTS 
I The New Lodgers at No. 7 Philibert Place 
II A Young Citizen of the World 
III The Legend of the Lost Prince 
IV The Rat 
V ``Silence Is Still the Order'' 
VI The Drill and the Secret Party 
VII ``The Lamp Is Lighted!'' 
VIII An Exciting Game 
IX ``It Is Not a Game'' 
X The Rat-and Samavia 
XI Come with Me 
XII Only Two Boys 
XIII Loristan Attends a Drill of the Squad 
XIV Marco Does Not Answer 
XV A Sound in a Dream 
XVI The Rat to the Rescue 
XVII ``It Is a Very Bad Sign'' 
XVIII ``Cities and Faces'' 
XIX ``That Is One!'' 
XX Marco Goes to the Opera 
XXI ``Help!'' 
XXII A Night Vigil 
XXIII The Silver Horn 
XXIV ``How Shall We Find Him? 
XXV A Voice in the Night 
XXVI Across the Frontier 
XXVII ``It is the Lost Prince! It Is Ivor!'' 
XXVIII ``Extra! Extra! Extra!'' 
XXIX 'Twixt Night and Morning 
XXX The Game Is at an End 
XXXI ``The Son of Stefan Loristan'' 
THE LOST PRINCE 
THE NEW LODGERS AT NO. 7 PHILIBERT PLACE 
There are many dreary and dingy rows of ugly houses in certain 
parts of Londonbut there certainly could not be any row more 
ugly or dingier than Philibert Place. There were stories that it 
had once been more attractivebut that had been so long ago that 
no one remembered the time. It stood back in its gloomynarrow 
strips of uncared-forsmoky gardenswhose broken iron railings 
were supposed to protect it from the surging traffic of a road 
which was always roaring with the rattle of bussescabsdrays
and vansand the passing of people who were shabbily dressed and 
looked as if they were either going to hard work or coming from 
itor hurrying to see if they could find some of it to do to 
keep themselves from going hungry. The brick fronts of the 
houses were blackened with smoketheir windows were nearly all 
dirty and hung with dingy curtainsor had no curtains at all; 
the strips of groundwhich had once been intended to grow 
flowers inhad been trodden down into bare earth in which even 
weeds had forgotten to grow. One of them was used as a 
stone-cutter's yardand cheap monumentscrossesand slates 
were set out for salebearing inscriptions beginning with 
``Sacred to the Memory of.'' Another had piles of old lumber in 
itanother exhibited second-hand furniturechairs with unsteady 
legssofas with horsehair stuffing bulging out of holes in their 
coveringmirrors with blotches or cracks in them. The insides 
of the houses were as gloomy as the outside. They were all 
exactly alike. In each a dark entrance passage led to narrow 
stairs going up to bedroomsand to narrow steps going down to a 
basement kitchen. The back bedroom looked out on smallsooty
flagged yardswhere thin cats quarreledor sat on the coping of 
the brick walls hoping that sometime they might feel the sun; the 
front rooms looked over the noisy roadand through their windows 
came the roar and rattle of it. It was shabby and cheerless on 
the brightest daysand on foggy or rainy ones it was the most 
forlorn place in London. 
At least that was what one boy thought as he stood near the iron 
railings watching the passers-by on the morning on which this 
story beginswhich was also the morning after he had been 
brought by his father to live as a lodger in the back 
sitting-room of the house No. 7. 
He was a boy about twelve years oldhis name was Marco Loristan
and he was the kind of boy people look at a second time when they 
have looked at him once. In the first placehe was a very big 
boy--tall for his yearsand with a particularly strong frame. 
His shoulders were broad and his arms and legs were long and 
powerful. He was quite used to hearing people sayas they 
glanced at him``What a finebig lad!'' And then they always 
looked again at his face. It was not an English face or an 
American oneand was very dark in coloring. His features were 
stronghis black hair grew on his head like a mathis eyes were 
large and deep setand looked out between thickstraightblack 
lashes. He was as un- English a boy as one could imagineand an 
observing person would have been struck at once by a sort of 
SILENT look expressed by his whole facea look which suggested 
that he was not a boy who talked much. 
This look was specially noticeable this morning as he stood 
before the iron railings. The things he was thinking of were of 
a kind likely to bring to the face of a twelve-year-old boy an 
unboyish expression. 
He was thinking of the longhurried journey he and his father 
and their old soldier servantLazarushad made during the last 
few days--the journey from Russia. Cramped in a close 
third-class railway carriagethey had dashed across the 
Continent as if something important or terrible were driving 
themand here they weresettled in London as if they were going 
to live forever at No. 7 Philibert Place. He knewhoweverthat 
though they might stay a yearit was just as probable thatin 
the middle of some nighthis father or Lazarus might waken him 
from his sleep and say``Get up-- dress yourself quickly. We 
must go at once.'' A few days laterhe might be in St. 
PetersburgBerlinViennaor Budapesthuddled away in some 
poor little house as shabby and comfortless as No. 7 Philibert 
Place. 
He passed his hand over his forehead as he thought of it and 
watched the busses. His strange life and his close association 
with his father had made him much older than his yearsbut he 
was only a boyafter alland the mystery of things sometimes 
weighed heavily upon himand set him to deep wondering. 
In not one of the many countries he knew had he ever met a boy 
whose life was in the least like his own. Other boys had homes 
in which they spent year after year; they went to school 
regularlyand played with other boysand talked openly of the 
things which happened to themand the journeys they made. When 
he remained in a place long enough to make a few boy-friendshe 
knew he must never forget that his whole existence was a sort of 
secret whose safety depended upon his own silence and discretion. 
This was because of the promises he had made to his fatherand 
they had been the first thing he remembered. Not that he had 
ever regretted anything connected with his father. He threw his 
black head up as he thought of that. None of the other boys had 
such a fathernot one of them. His father was his idol and his 
chief. He had scarcely ever seen him when his clothes had not 
been poor and shabbybut he had also never seen him when
despite his worn coat and frayed linenhe had not stood out 
among all others as more distinguished than the most noticeable 
of them. When he walked down a streetpeople turned to look at 
him even oftener than they turned to look at Marcoand the boy 
felt as if it was not merely because he was a big man with a 
handsomedark facebut because he lookedsomehowas if he had 
been born to command armiesand as if no one would think of 
disobeying him. Yet Marco had never seen him command any one
and they had always been poorand shabbily dressedand often 
enough ill-fed. But whether they were in one country or another
and whatsoever dark place they seemed to be hiding inthe few 
people they saw treated him with a sort of deferenceand nearly 
always stood when they were in his presenceunless he bade them 
sit down. 
``It is because they know he is a patriotand patriots are 
respected'' the boy had told himself. 
He himself wished to be a patriotthough he had never seen his 
own country of Samavia. He knew it wellhowever. His father 
had talked to him about it ever since that day when he had made 
the promises. He had taught him to know it by helping him to 
study curious detailed maps of it--maps of its citiesmaps of 
its mountainsmaps of its roads. He had told him stories of the 
wrongs done its peopleof their sufferings and struggles for 
libertyandabove allof their unconquerable courage. When 
they talked together of its historyMarco's boy-blood burned and 
leaped in his veinsand he always knewby the look in his 
father's eyesthat his blood burned also. His countrymen had 
been killedthey had been robbedthey had died by thousands of 
cruelties and starvationbut their souls had never been 
conqueredandthrough all the years during which more powerful 
nations crushed and enslaved themthey never ceased to struggle 
to free themselves and stand unfettered as Samavians had stood 
centuries before. 
``Why do we not live there'' Marco had cried on the day the 
promises were made. ``Why do we not go back and fight? When I 
am a manI will be a soldier and die for Samavia.'' 
``We are of those who must LIVE for Samavia--working day and 
night'' his father had answered; ``denying ourselvestraining 
our bodies and soulsusing our brainslearning the things which 
are best to be done for our people and our country. Even exiles 
may be Samavian soldiers--I am oneyou must be one.'' 
``Are we exiles?'' asked Marco. 
``Yes'' was the answer. ``But even if we never set foot on 
Samavian soilwe must give our lives to it. I have given mine 
since I was sixteen. I shall give it until I die.'' 
``Have you never lived there?'' said Marco. 
A strange look shot across his father's face. 
``No'' he answeredand said no more. Marco watching himknew 
he must not ask the question again. 
The next words his father said were about the promises. Marco 
was quite a little fellow at the timebut he understood the 
solemnity of themand felt that he was being honored as if he 
were a man. 
``When you are a manyou shall know all you wish to know'' 
Loristan said. ``Now you are a childand your mind must not be 
burdened. But you must do your part. A child sometimes forgets 
that words may be dangerous. You must promise never to forget 
this. Wheresoever you are; if you have playmatesyou must 
remember to be silent about many things. You must not speak of 
what I door of the people who come to see me. You must not 
mention the things in your life which make it different from the 
lives of other boys. You must keep in your mind that a secret 
exists which a chance foolish word might betray. You are a 
Samavianand there have been Samavians who have died a thousand 
deaths rather than betray a secret. You must learn to obey 
without questionas if you were a soldier. Now you must take 
your oath of allegiance.'' 
He rose from his seat and went to a corner of the room. He knelt 
downturned back the carpetlifted a plankand took something 
from beneath it. It was a swordandas he came back to Marco
he drew it out from its sheath. The child's stronglittle body 
stiffened and drew itself uphis largedeep eyes flashed. He 
was to take his oath of allegiance upon a sword as if he were a 
man. He did not know that his small hand opened and shut with a 
fierce understanding grip because those of his blood had for long 
centuries past carried swords and fought with them. 
Loristan gave him the big bared weaponand stood erect before 
him. 
``Repeat these words after me sentence by sentence!'' he 
commanded. 
And as he spoke them Marco echoed each one loudly and clearly. 
``The sword in my hand--for Samavia! 
``The heart in my breast--for Samavia! 
``The swiftness of my sightthe thought of my brainthe life of 
my life--for Samavia. 
``Here grows a man for Samavia. 
``God be thanked!'' 
Then Loristan put his hand on the child's shoulderand his dark 
face looked almost fiercely proud. 
``From this hour'' he said``you and I are comrades at arms.'' 
And from that day to the one on which he stood beside the broken 
iron railings of No. 7 Philibert PlaceMarco had not forgotten 
for one hour. 
A YOUNG CITIZEN OF THE WORLD 
He had been in London more than once beforebut not to the 
lodgings in Philibert Place. When he was brought a second or 
third time to a town or cityhe always knew that the house he 
was taken to would be in a quarter new to himand he should not 
see again the people he had seen before. Such slight links of 
acquaintance as sometimes formed themselves between him and other 
children as shabby and poor as himself were easily broken. His 
fatherhoweverhad never forbidden him to make chance 
acquaintances. He hadin facttold him that he had reasons for 
not wishing him to hold himself aloof from other boys. The only 
barrier which must exist between them must be the barrier of 
silence concerning his wanderings from country to country. Other 
boys as poor as he was did not make constant journeystherefore 
they would miss nothing from his boyish talk when he omitted all 
mention of his. When he was in Russiahe must speak only of 
Russian places and Russian people and customs. When he was in 
FranceGermanyAustriaor Englandhe must do the same thing. 
When he had learned EnglishFrenchGermanItalianand Russian 
he did not know. He had seemed to grow up in the midst of 
changing tongues which all seemed familiar to himas languages 
are familiar to children who have lived with them until one 
scarcely seems less familiar than another. He did remember
howeverthat his father had always been unswerving in his 
attention to his pronunciation and method of speaking the 
language of any country they chanced to be living in. 
``You must not seem a foreigner in any country'' he had said to 
him. ``It is necessary that you should not. But when you are in 
Englandyou must not know Frenchor Germanor anything but 
English.'' 
Oncewhen he was seven or eight years olda boy had asked him 
what his father's work was. 
``His own father is a carpenterand he asked me if my father was 
one'' Marco brought the story to Loristan. ``I said you were 
not. Then he asked if you were a shoemakerand another one said 
you might be a bricklayer or a tailor--and I didn't know what to 
tell them.'' He had been out playing in a London streetand he 
put a grubby little hand on his father's armand clutched and 
almost fiercely shook it. ``I wanted to say that you were not 
like their fathersnot at all. I knew you were notthough you 
were quite as poor. You are not a bricklayer or a shoemakerbut 
a patriot--you could not be only a bricklayer--you!'' He said it 
grandly and with a queer indignationhis black head held up and 
his eyes angry. 
Loristan laid his hand against his mouth. 
``Hush! hush!'' he said. ``Is it an insult to a man to think he 
may be a carpenter or make a good suit of clothes? If I could 
make our clotheswe should go better dressed. If I were a 
shoemakeryour toes would not be making their way into the world 
as they are now.'' He was smilingbut Marco saw his head held 
itself hightooand his eyes were glowing as he touched his 
shoulder. ``I know you did not tell them I was a patriot'' he 
ended. ``What was it you said to them?'' 
``I remembered that you were nearly always writing and drawing 
mapsand I said you were a writerbut I did not know what you 
wrote--and that you said it was a poor trade. I heard you say 
that once to Lazarus. Was that a right thing to tell them?'' 
``Yes. You may always say it if you are asked. There are poor 
fellows enough who write a thousand different things which bring 
them little money. There is nothing strange in my being a 
writer.'' 
So Loristan answered himand from that time ifby any chance
his father's means of livelihood were inquired intoit was 
simple enough and true enough to say that he wrote to earn his 
bread. 
In the first days of strangeness to a new placeMarco often 
walked a great deal. He was strong and untiringand it amused 
him to wander through unknown streetsand look at shopsand 
housesand people. He did not confine himself to the great 
thoroughfaresbut liked to branch off into the side streets and 
odddeserted-looking squaresand even courts and alleyways. He 
often stopped to watch workmen and talk to them if they were 
friendly. In this way he made stray acquaintances in his 
strollingsand learned a good many things. He had a fondness 
for wandering musiciansandfrom an old Italian who had in his 
youth been a singer in operahe had learned to sing a number of 
songs in his strongmusical boy-voice. He knew well many of the 
songs of the people in several countries. 
It was very dull this first morningand he wished that he had 
something to do or some one to speak to. To do nothing whatever 
is a depressing thing at all timesbut perhaps it is more 
especially so when one is a bighealthy boy twelve years old. 
London as he saw it in the Marylebone Road seemed to him a 
hideous place. It was murky and shabby-lookingand full of 
dreary-faced people. It was not the first time he had seen the 
same thingsand they always made him feel that he wished he had 
something to do. 
Suddenly he turned away from the gate and went into the house to 
speak to Lazarus. He found him in his dingy closet of a room on 
the fourth floor at the back of the house. 
``I am going for a walk'' he announced to him. ``Please tell my 
father if he asks for me. He is busyand I must not disturb 
him.'' 
Lazarus was patching an old coat as he often patched things-even 
shoes sometimes. When Marco spokehe stood up at once to 
answer him. He was very obstinate and particular about certain 
forms of manner. Nothing would have obliged him to remain seated 
when Loristan or Marco was near him. Marco thought it was 
because he had been so strictly trained as a soldier. He knew 
that his father had had great trouble to make him lay aside his 
habit of saluting when they spoke to him. 
``Perhaps'' Marco had heard Loristan say to him almost severely
once when he had forgotten himself and had stood at salute while 
his master passed through a broken-down iron gate before an 
equally broken-down-looking lodging-house--``perhaps you can 
force yourself to remember when I tell you that it is not 
safe--IT IS NOT SAFE! You put us in danger!'' 
It was evident that this helped the good fellow to control 
himself. Marco remembered that at the time he had actually 
turned paleand had struck his forehead and poured forth a 
torrent of Samavian dialect in penitence and terror. Butthough 
he no longer saluted them in publiche omitted no other form of 
reverence and ceremonyand the boy had become accustomed to 
being treated as if he were anything but the shabby lad whose 
very coat was patched by the old soldier who stood ``at 
attention'' before him. 
``Yessir'' Lazarus answered. ``Where was it your wish to 
go?'' 
Marco knitted his black brows a little in trying to recall 
distinct memories of the last time he had been in London. 
``I have been to so many placesand have seen so many things 
since I was here beforethat I must begin to learn again about 
the streets and buildings I do not quite remember.'' 
``Yessir'' said Lazarus. ``There HAVE been so many. I also 
forget. You were but eight years old when you were last here.'' 
``I think I will go and find the royal palaceand then I will 
walk about and learn the names of the streets'' Marco said. 
``Yessir'' answered Lazarusand this time he made his 
military salute. 
Marco lifted his right hand in recognitionas if he had been a 
young officer. Most boys might have looked awkward or theatrical 
in making the gesturebut he made it with naturalness and ease
because he had been familiar with the form since his babyhood. 
He had seen officers returning the salutes of their men when they 
encountered each other by chance in the streetshe had seen 
princes passing sentries on their way to their carriagesmore 
august personages raising the quietrecognizing hand to their 
helmets as they rode through applauding crowds. He had seen many 
royal persons and many royal pageantsbut always only as an 
ill-clad boy standing on the edge of the crowd of common people. 
An energetic ladhowever poorcannot spend his days in going 
from one country to another withoutby mere every-day chance
becoming familiar with the outer life of royalties and courts. 
Marco had stood in continental thoroughfares when visiting 
emperors rode by with glittering soldiery before and behind them
and a populace shouting courteous welcomes. He knew where in 
various great capitals the sentries stood before kingly or 
princely palaces. He had seen certain royal faces often enough 
to know them welland to be ready to make his salute when 
particular quiet and unattended carriages passed him by. 
``It is well to know them. It is well to observe everything and 
to train one's self to remember faces and circumstances'' his 
father had said. ``If you were a young prince or a young man 
training for a diplomatic careeryou would be taught to notice 
and remember people and things as you would be taught to speak 
your own language with elegance. Such observation would be your 
most practical accomplishment and greatest power. It is as 
practical for one man as another--for a poor lad in a patched 
coat as for one whose place is to be in courts. As you cannot be 
educated in the ordinary wayyou must learn from travel and the 
world. You must lose nothing--forget nothing.'' 
It was his father who had taught him everythingand he had 
learned a great deal. Loristan had the power of making all 
things interesting to fascination. To Marco it seemed that he 
knew everything in the world. They were not rich enough to buy 
many booksbut Loristan knew the treasures of all great cities
the resources of the smallest towns. Together he and his boy 
walked through the endless galleries filled with the wonders of 
the worldthe pictures before which through centuries an 
unbroken procession of almost worshiping eyes had passed 
uplifted. Because his father made the pictures seem the glowing
burning work of still-living men whom the centuries could not 
turn to dustbecause he could tell the stories of their living 
and laboring to triumphstories of what they felt and suffered 
and werethe boy became as familiar with the old 
masters--ItalianGermanFrenchDutchEnglishSpanish--as he 
was with most of the countries they had lived in. They were not 
merely old masters to himbut men who were greatmen who seemed 
to him to have wielded beautiful swords and held highsplendid 
lights. His father could not go often with himbut he always 
took him for the first time to the galleriesmuseumslibraries
and historical places which were richest in treasures of art
beautyor story. Thenhaving seen them once through his eyes
Marco went again and again aloneand so grew intimate with the 
wonders of the world. He knew that he was gratifying a wish of 
his father's when he tried to train himself to observe all things 
and forget nothing. These palaces of marvels were his 
school-roomsand his strange but rich education was the most 
interesting part of his life. In timehe knew exactly the 
places where the great RembrandtsVandykesRubensRaphaels
Tintorettosor Frans Hals hung; he knew whether this masterpiece 
or that was in Viennain Parisin Veniceor Munichor Rome. 
He knew stories of splendid crown jewelsof old armorof 
ancient craftsand of Roman relics dug up from beneath the 
foundations of old German cities. Any boy wandering to amuse 
himself through museums and palaces on ``free days'' could see 
what he sawbut boys living fuller and less lonely lives would 
have been less likely to concentrate their entire minds on what 
they looked atand also less likely to store away facts with the 
determination to be able to recall at any moment the mental shelf 
on which they were laid. Having no playmates and nothing to play 
withhe began when he was a very little fellow to make a sort of 
game out of his rambles through picture-galleriesand the places 
whichwhether they called themselves museums or notwere 
storehouses or relics of antiquity. There were always the 
blessed ``free days'' when he could climb any marble stepsand 
enter any great portal without paying an entrance fee. Once 
insidethere were plenty of plainly and poorly dressed people to 
be seenbut there were not often boys as young as himself who 
were not attended by older companions. Quiet and orderly as he 
washe often found himself stared at. The game he had created 
for himself was as simple as it was absorbing. It was to try how 
much he could remember and clearly describe to his father when 
they sat together at night and talked of what he had seen. These 
night talks filled his happiest hours. He never felt lonely 
thenand when his father sat and watched him with a certain 
curious and deep attention in his darkreflective eyesthe boy 
was utterly comforted and content. Sometimes he brought back 
rough and crude sketches of objects he wished to ask questions 
aboutand Loristan could always relate to him the fullrich 
story of the thing he wanted to know. They were stories made so 
splendid and full of color in the telling that Marco could not 
forget them. 
THE LEGEND OF THE LOST PRINCE 
As he walked through the streetshe was thinking of one of these 
stories. It was one he had heard first when he was very young
and it had so seized upon his imagination that he had asked often 
for it. It wasindeeda part of the long-past history of 
Samaviaand he had loved it for that reason. Lazarus had often 
told it to himsometimes adding much detailbut he had always 
liked best his father's versionwhich seemed a thrilling and 
living thing. On their journey from Russiaduring an hour when 
they had been forced to wait in a cold wayside station and had 
found the time longLoristan had discussed it with him. He 
always found some such way of making hard and comfortless hours 
easier to live through. 
``Finebig lad--for a foreigner'' Marco heard a man say to his 
companion as he passed them this morning. ``Looks like a Pole or 
a Russian.'' 
It was this which had led his thoughts back to the story of the 
Lost Prince. He knew that most of the people who looked at him 
and called him a ``foreigner'' had not even heard of Samavia. 
Those who chanced to recall its existence knew of it only as a 
small fierce countryso placed upon the map that the larger 
countries which were its neighbors felt they must control and 
keep it in orderand therefore made incursions into itand 
fought its people and each other for possession. But it had not 
been always so. It was an oldold countryand hundreds of 
years ago it had been as celebrated for its peaceful happiness 
and wealth as for its beauty. It was often said that it was one 
of the most beautiful places in the world. A favorite Samavian 
legend was that it had been the site of the Garden of Eden. In 
those past centuriesits people had been of such great stature
physical beautyand strengththat they had been like a race of 
noble giants. They were in those days a pastoral peoplewhose 
rich crops and splendid flocks and herds were the envy of less 
fertile countries. Among the shepherds and herdsmen there were 
poets who sang their own songs when they piped among their sheep 
upon the mountain sides and in the flower-thick valleys. Their 
songs had been about patriotism and braveryand faithfulness to 
their chieftains and their country. The simple courtesy of the 
poorest peasant was as stately as the manner of a noble. But 
thatas Loristan had said with a tired smilehad been before 
they had had time to outlive and forget the Garden of Eden. Five 
hundred years agothere had succeeded to the throne a king who 
was bad and weak. His father had lived to be ninety years old
and his son had grown tired of waiting in Samavia for his crown. 
He had gone out into the worldand visited other countries and 
their courts. When he returned and became kinghe lived as no 
Samavian king had lived before. He was an extravagantvicious 
man of furious temper and bitter jealousies. He was jealous of 
the larger courts and countries he had seenand tried 
to introduce their customs and their ambitions. He ended by 
introducing their worst faults and vices. There arose political 
quarrels and savage new factions. Money was squandered until 
poverty began for the first time to stare the country in the 
face. The big Samaviansafter their first stupefactionbroke 
forth into furious rage. There were mobs and riotsthen bloody 
battles. Since it was the king who had worked this wrongthey 
would have none of him. They would depose him and make his son 
king in his place. It was at this part of the story that Marco 
was always most deeply interested. The young prince was totally 
unlike his father. He was a true royal Samavian. He was bigger 
and stronger for his age than any man in the countryand he was 
as handsome as a young Viking god. More than thishe had a 
lion's heartand before he was sixteenthe shepherds and 
herdsmen had already begun to make songs about his young valor
and his kingly courtesyand generous kindness. Not only the 
shepherds and herdsmen sang thembut the people in the streets. 
The kinghis fatherhad always been jealous of himeven when 
he was only a beautifulstately child whom the people roared 
with joy to see as he rode through the streets. When he returned 
from his journeyings and found him a splendid youthhe detested 
him. When the people began to clamor and demand that he himself 
should abdicatehe became insane with rageand committed such 
cruelties that the people ran mad themselves. One day they 
stormed the palacekilled and overpowered the guardsand
rushing into the royal apartmentsburst in upon the king as he 
shuddered green with terror and fury in his private room. He was 
king no moreand must leave the countrythey vowedas they 
closed round him with bared weapons and shook them in his face. 
Where was the prince? They must see him and tell him their 
ultimatum. It was he whom they wanted for a king. They trusted 
him and would obey him. They began to shout aloud his name
calling him in a sort of chant in unison``Prince Ivor--Prince 
Ivor--Prince Ivor!'' But no answer came. The people of the 
palace had hidden themselvesand the place was utterly silent. 
The kingdespite his terrorcould not help but sneer. 
``Call him again'' he said. ``He is afraid to come out of his 
hole!'' 
A savage fellow from the mountain fastnesses struck him on the 
mouth. 
``He afraid!'' he shouted. ``If he does not comeit is because 
thou hast killed him--and thou art a dead man!'' 
This set them aflame with hotter burning. They broke away
leaving three on guardand ran about the empty palace rooms 
shouting the prince's name. But there was no answer. They 
sought him in a frenzybursting open doors and flinging down 
every obstacle in their way. A pagefound hidden in a closet
owned that he had seen His Royal Highness pass through a corridor 
early in the morning. He had been softly singing to himself one 
of the shepherd's songs. 
And in this strange way out of the history of Samaviafive 
hundred years before Marco's daythe young prince had walked-singing 
softly to himself the old song of Samavia's beauty and 
happiness. For he was never seen again. 
In every nook and crannyhigh and lowthey sought for him
believing that the king himself had made him prisoner in some 
secret placeor had privately had him killed. The fury of the 
people grew to frenzy. There were new risingsand every few 
days the palace was attacked and searched again. But no trace of 
the prince was found. He had vanished as a star vanishes when it 
drops from its place in the sky. During a riot in the palace
when a last fruitless search was madethe king himself was 
killed. A powerful noble who headed one of the uprisings made 
himself king in his place. From that timethe once splendid 
little kingdom was like a bone fought for by dogs. Its pastoral 
peace was forgotten. It was torn and worried and shaken by 
stronger countries. It tore and worried itself with internal 
fights. It assassinated kings and created new ones. No man was 
sure in his youth what ruler his maturity would live underor 
whether his children would die in useless fightsor through 
stress of poverty and crueluseless laws. There were no more 
shepherds and herdsmen who were poetsbut on the mountain sides 
and in the valleys sometimes some of the old songs were sung. 
Those most beloved were songs about a Lost Prince whose name had 
been Ivor. If he had been kinghe would have saved Samaviathe 
verses saidand all brave hearts believed that he would still 
return. In the modern citiesone of the jocular cynical sayings 
was``Yesthat will happen when Prince Ivor comes again.'' 
In his more childish daysMarco had been bitterly troubled by 
the unsolved mystery. Where had he gone--the Lost Prince? Had 
he been killedor had he been hidden away in a dungeon? But he 
was so big and bravehe would have broken out of any dungeon. 
The boy had invented for himself a dozen endings to the story. 
``Did no one ever find his sword or his cap--or hear anything or 
guess anything about him ever--ever--ever?'' he would say 
restlessly again and again. 
One winter's nightas they sat together before a small fire in a 
cold room in a cold city in Austriahe had been so eager and 
asked so many searching questionsthat his father gave him an 
answer he had never given him beforeand which was a sort of 
ending to the storythough not a satisfying one: 
``Everybody guessed as you are guessing. A few very old 
shepherds in the mountains who like to believe ancient histories 
relate a story which most people consider a kind of legend. It 
is that almost a hundred years after the prince was lostan old 
shepherd told a story his long-dead father had confided to him in 
secret just before he died. The father had said thatgoing out 
in the early morning on the mountain sidehe had found in the 
forest what he at first thought to be the dead body of a 
beautifulboyishyoung huntsman. Some enemy had plainly 
attacked him from behind and believed he had killed him. He was
howevernot quite deadand the shepherd dragged him into a cave 
where he himself often took refuge from storms with his flocks. 
Since there was such riot and disorder in the cityhe was afraid 
to speak of what he had found; andby the time he discovered 
that he was harboring the princethe king had already been 
killedand an even worse man had taken possession of his throne
and ruled Samavia with a blood-stainediron hand. To the 
terrified and simple peasant the safest thing seemed to get the 
wounded youth out of the country before there was any chance of 
his being discovered and murdered outrightas he would surely 
be. The cave in which he was hidden was not far from the 
frontierand while he was still so weak that he was hardly 
conscious of what befell himhe was smuggled across it in a cart 
loaded with sheepskinsand left with some kind monks who did not 
know his rank or name. The shepherd went back to his flocks and 
his mountainsand lived and died among themalways in terror of 
the changing rulers and their savage battles with each other. 
The mountaineers said among themselvesas the generations 
succeeded each otherthat the Lost Prince must have died young
because otherwise he would have come back to his country and 
tried to restore its goodbygone days.'' 
``Yeshe would have come'' Marco said. 
``He would have come if he had seen that he could help his 
people'' Loristan answeredas if he were not reflecting on a 
story which was probably only a kind of legend. ``But he was 
very youngand Samavia was in the hands of the new dynastyand 
filled with his enemies. He could not have crossed the frontier 
without an army. StillI think he died young.'' 
It was of this story that Marco was thinking as he walkedand 
perhaps the thoughts that filled his mind expressed themselves in 
his face in some way which attracted attention. As he was 
nearing Buckingham Palacea distinguished-looking well-dressed 
man with clever eyes caught sight of himandafter looking at 
him keenlyslackened his pace as he approached him from the 
opposite direction. An observer might have thought he saw 
something which puzzled and surprised him. Marco didn't see him 
at alland still moved forwardthinking of the shepherds and 
the prince. The well- dressed man began to walk still more 
slowly. When he was quite close to Marcohe stopped and spoke 
to him--in the Samavian language. 
``What is your name?'' he asked. 
Marco's training from his earliest childhood had been an extraordinary 
thing. His love for his father had made it simple and 
natural to himand he had never questioned the reason for it. 
As he had been taught to keep silencehe had been taught to 
control the expression of his face and the sound of his voice
andabove allnever to allow himself to look startled. But for 
this he might have started at the extraordinary sound of the 
Samavian words suddenly uttered in a London street by an English 
gentleman. He might even have answered the question in Samavian 
himself. But he did not. He courteously lifted his cap and 
replied in English: 
``Excuse me?'' 
The gentleman's clever eyes scrutinized him keenly. Then he also 
spoke in English. 
``Perhaps you do not understand? I asked your name because you 
are very like a Samavian I know'' he said. 
``I am Marco Loristan'' the boy answered him. 
The man looked straight into his eyes and smiled. 
``That is not the name'' he said. ``I beg your pardonmy 
boy.'' 
He was about to go onand had indeed taken a couple of steps 
awaywhen he paused and turned to him again. 
``You may tell your father that you are a very well-trained lad. 
I wanted to find out for myself.'' And he went on. 
Marco felt that his heart beat a little quickly. This was one of 
several incidents which had happened during the last three years
and made him feel that he was living among things so mysterious 
that their very mystery hinted at danger. But he himself had 
never before seemed involved in them. Why should it matter that 
he was well-behaved? Then he remembered something. The man had 
not said ``well-behaved'' he had said ``well-TRAINED.'' 
Well-trained in what way? He felt his forehead prickle slightly 
as he thought of the smilingkeen look which set itself so 
straight upon him. Had he spoken to him in Samavian for an 
experimentto see if he would be startled into forgetting that 
he had been trained to seem to know only the language of the 
country he was temporarily living in? But he had not forgotten. 
He had remembered welland was thankful that he had betrayed 
nothing. ``Even exiles may be Samavian soldiers. I am one. You 
must be one'' his father had said on that day long ago when he 
had made him take his oath. Perhaps remembering his training was 
being a soldier. Never had Samavia needed help as she needed it 
to-day. Two years beforea rival claimant to the throne had 
assassinated the then reigning king and his sonsand since then
bloody war and tumult had raged. The new king was a powerful 
manand had a great following of the worst and most self-seeking 
of the people. Neighboring countries had interfered for their 
own welfare's sakeand the newspapers had been full of stories 
of savage fighting and atrocitiesand of starving peasants. 
Marco had late one evening entered their lodgings to find 
Loristan walking to and fro like a lion in a cagea paper 
crushed and torn in his handsand his eyes blazing. He had been 
reading of cruelties wrought upon innocent peasants and women and 
children. Lazarus was standing staring at him with huge tears 
running down his cheeks. When Marco opened the doorthe old 
soldier strode over to himturned him aboutand led him out of 
the room. 
``Pardonsirpardon!'' he sobbed. ``No one must see himnot 
even you. He suffers so horribly.'' 
He stood by a chair in Marco's own small bedroomwhere he half 
pushedhalf led him. He bent his grizzled headand wept like a 
beaten child. 
``Dear God of those who are in painassuredly it is now the time 
to give back to us our Lost Prince!'' he saidand Marco knew the 
words were a prayerand wondered at the frenzied intensity of 
itbecause it seemed so wild a thing to pray for the return of a 
youth who had died five hundred years before. 
When he reached the palacehe was still thinking of the man who 
had spoken to him. He was thinking of him even as he looked at 
the majestic gray stone building and counted the number of its 
stories and windows. He walked round it that he might make a 
note in his memory of its size and form and its entrancesand 
guess at the size of its gardens. This he did because it was 
part of his gameand part of his strange training. 
When he came back to the fronthe saw that in the great entrance 
court within the high iron railings an elegant but quiet- looking 
closed carriage was drawing up before the doorway. Marco stood 
and watched with interest to see who would come out and enter it. 
He knew that kings and emperors who were not on parade looked 
merely like well-dressed private gentlemenand often chose to go 
out as simply and quietly as other men. So he thought that
perhapsif he waitedhe might see one of those well-known faces 
which represent the highest rank and power in a monarchical 
countryand which in times gone by had also represented the 
power over human life and death and liberty. 
``I should like to be able to tell my father that I have seen the 
King and know his faceas I know the faces of the czar and the 
two emperors.'' 
There was a little movement among the tall men-servants in the 
royal scarlet liveriesand an elderly man descended the steps 
attended by another who walked behind him. He entered the 
carriagethe other man followed himthe door was closedand 
the carriage drove through the entrance gateswhere the sentries 
saluted. 
Marco was near enough to see distinctly. The two men were 
talking as if interested. The face of the one farthest from him 
was the face he had often seen in shop-windows and newspapers. 
The boy made his quickformal salute. It was the King; andas 
he smiled and acknowledged his greetinghe spoke to his 
companion. 
``That fine lad salutes as if he belonged to the army'' was what 
he saidthough Marco could not hear him. 
His companion leaned forward to look through the window. When he 
caught sight of Marcoa singular expression crossed his face. 
``He does belong to an armysir'' he answered``though he does 
not know it. His name is Marco Loristan.'' 
Then Marco saw him plainly for the first time. He was the man 
with the keen eyes who had spoken to him in Samavian. 
THE RAT 
Marco would have wondered very much if he had heard the words
butas he did not hear themhe turned toward home wondering at 
something else. A man who was in intimate attendance on a king 
must be a person of importance. He no doubt knew many things not 
only of his own ruler's countrybut of the countries of other 
kings. But so few had really known anything of poor little 
Samavia until the newspapers had begun to tell them of the 
horrors of its war--and who but a Samavian could speak its 
language? It would be an interesting thing to tell his 
father--that a man who knew the King had spoken to him in 
Samavianand had sent that curious message. 
Later he found himself passing a side street and looked up it. 
It was so narrowand on either side of it were such oldtall
and sloping-walled houses that it attracted his attention. It 
looked as if a bit of old London had been left to stand while 
newer places grew up and hid it from view. This was the kind of 
street he liked to pass through for curiosity's sake. He knew 
many of them in the old quarters of many cities. He had lived in 
some of them. He could find his way home from the other end of 
it. Another thing than its queerness attracted him. He heard a 
clamor of boys' voicesand he wanted to see what they were 
doing. Sometimeswhen he had reached a new place and had had 
that lonely feelinghe had followed some boyish clamor of play 
or wranglingand had found a temporary friend or so. 
Half-way to the street's end there was an arched brick passage. 
The sound of the voices came from there--one of them highand 
thinner and shriller than the rest. Marco tramped up to the arch 
and looked down through the passage. It opened on to a gray 
flagged spaceshut in by the railings of a blackdesertedand 
ancient graveyard behind a venerable church which turned its face 
toward some other street. The boys were not playingbut 
listening to one of their number who was reading to them from a 
newspaper. 
Marco walked down the passage and listened alsostanding in the 
dark arched outlet at its end and watching the boy who read. He 
was a strange little creature with a big foreheadand deep eyes 
which were curiously sharp. But this was not all. He had a 
hunch backhis legs seemed small and crooked. He sat with them 
crossed before him on a rough wooden platform set on low wheels
on which he evidently pushed himself about. Near him were a 
number of sticks stacked together as if they were rifles. One of 
the first things that Marco noticed was that he had a savage 
little face marked with lines as if he had been angry all his 
life. 
``Hold your tonguesyou fools!'' he shrilled out to some boys 
who interrupted him. ``Don't you want to know anythingyou 
ignorant swine?'' 
He was as ill-dressed as the rest of thembut he did not speak 
in the Cockney dialect. If he was of the riffraff of the 
streetsas his companions werehe was somehow different. 
Then heby chancesaw Marcowho was standing in the arched end 
of the passage. 
``What are you doing there listening?'' he shoutedand at once 
stooped to pick up a stone and threw it at him. The stone hit 
Marco's shoulderbut it did not hurt him much. What he did not 
like was that another lad should want to throw something at him 
before they had even exchanged boy-signs. He also did not like 
the fact that two other boys promptly took the matter up by 
bending down to pick up stones also. 
He walked forward straight into the group and stopped close to 
the hunchback. 
``What did you do that for?'' he askedin his rather deep young 
voice. 
He was big and strong-looking enough to suggest that he was not a 
boy it would be easy to dispose ofbut it was not that which 
made the group stand still a moment to stare at him. It was 
something in himself--half of it a kind of impartial lack of 
anything like irritation at the stone-throwing. It was as if it 
had not mattered to him in the least. It had not made him feel 
angry or insulted. He was only rather curious about it. Because 
he was cleanand his hair and his shabby clothes were brushed
the first impression given by his appearance as he stood in the 
archway was that he was a young ``toff'' poking his nose where it 
was not wanted; butas he drew nearthey saw that the 
well-brushed clothes were wornand there were patches on his 
shoes. 
``What did you do that for?'' he askedand he asked it merely as 
if he wanted to find out the reason. 
``I'm not going to have you swells dropping in to my club as if 
it was your own'' said the hunchback. 
``I'm not a swelland I didn't know it was a club'' Marco 
answered. ``I heard boysand I thought I'd come and look. When 
I heard you reading about SamaviaI wanted to hear.'' 
He looked at the reader with his silent-expressioned eyes. 
``You needn't have thrown a stone'' he added. ``They don't do 
it at men's clubs. I'll go away.'' 
He turned about as if he were goingbutbefore he had taken 
three stepsthe hunchback hailed him unceremoniously. 
``Hi!'' he called out. ``Hiyou!'' 
``What do you want?'' said Marco. 
``I bet you don't know where Samavia isor what they're fighting 
about.'' The hunchback threw the words at him. 
``YesI do. It's north of Beltrazo and east of Jiardasiaand 
they are fighting because one party has assassinated King Maran
and the other will not let them crown Nicola Iarovitch. And why 
should they? He's a brigandand hasn't a drop of royal blood in 
him.'' 
``Oh!'' reluctantly admitted the hunchback. ``You do know that 
muchdo you? Come back here.'' 
Marco turned backwhile the boys still stared. It was as if two 
leaders or generals were meeting for the first timeand the 
rabblelooking onwondered what would come of their encounter. 
``The Samavians of the Iarovitch party are a bad lot and want 
only bad things'' said Marcospeaking first. ``They care 
nothing for Samavia. They only care for money and the power to 
make laws which will serve them and crush everybody else. They 
know Nicola is a weak manand thatif they can crown him king
they can make him do what they like.'' 
The fact that he spoke firstand thatthough he spoke in a 
steady boyish voice without swaggerhe somehow seemed to take it 
for granted that they would listenmade his place for him at 
once. Boys are impressionable creaturesand they know a leader 
when they see him. The hunchback fixed glittering eyes on him. 
The rabble began to murmur. 
``Rat! Rat!'' several voices cried at once in good strong 
Cockney. ``Arst 'im some moreRat!'' 
``Is that what they call you?'' Marco asked the hunchback. 
``It's what I called myself'' he answered resentfully. `` `The 
Rat.' Look at me! Crawling round on the ground like this! Look 
at me!'' 
He made a gesture ordering his followers to move asideand began 
to push himself rapidlywith queer darts this side and that 
round the inclosure. He bent his head and bodyand twisted his 
faceand made strange animal-like movements. He even uttered 
sharp squeaks as he rushed here and there--as a rat might have 
done when it was being hunted. He did it as if he were 
displaying an accomplishmentand his followers' laughter was 
applause. 
``Wasn't I like a rat?'' he demandedwhen he suddenly stopped. 
``You made yourself like one on purpose'' Marco answered. ``You 
do it for fun.'' 
``Not so much fun'' said The Rat. ``I feel like one. Every 
one's my enemy. I'm vermin. I can't fight or defend myself 
unless I bite. I can bitethough.'' And he showed two rows of 
fiercestrongwhite teethsharper at the points than human 
teeth usually are. ``I bite my father when he gets drunk and 
beats me. I've bitten him till he's learned to remember.'' He 
laughed a shrillsqueaking laugh. ``He hasn't tried it for 
three months--even when he was drunk-- and he's always drunk.'' 
Then he laughed again still more shrilly. ``He's a gentleman'' 
he said. ``I'm a gentleman's son. He was a Master at a big 
school until he was kicked out--that was when I was four and my 
mother died. I'm thirteen now. How old are you?'' 
``I'm twelve'' answered Marco. 
The Rat twisted his face enviously. 
``I wish I was your size! Are you a gentleman's son? You look 
as if you were.'' 
``I'm a very poor man's son'' was Marco's answer. ``My father 
is a writer.'' 
``Thenten to onehe's a sort of gentleman'' said The Rat. 
Then quite suddenly he threw another question at him. ``What's 
the name of the other Samavian party?'' 
``The Maranovitch. The Maranovitch and the Iarovitch have been 
fighting with each other for five hundred years. First one 
dynasty rulesand then the other gets in when it has killed 
somebody as it killed King Maran'' Marco answered without 
hesitation. 
``What was the name of the dynasty that ruled before they began 
fighting? The first Maranovitch assassinated the last of them'' 
The Rat asked him. 
``The Fedorovitch'' said Marco. ``The last one was a bad 
king.'' 
``His son was the one they never found again'' said The Rat. 
``The one they call the Lost Prince.'' 
Marco would have started but for his long training in exterior 
self-control. It was so strange to hear his dream-hero spoken of 
in this back alley in a slumand just after he had been thinking 
of him. 
``What do you know about him?'' he askedandas he did sohe 
saw the group of vagabond lads draw nearer. 
``Not much. I only read something about him in a torn magazine I 
found in the street'' The Rat answered. ``The man that wrote 
about him said he was only part of a legendand he laughed at 
people for believing in him. He said it was about time that he 
should turn up again if he intended to. I've invented things 
about him because these chaps like to hear me tell them. They're 
only stories.'' 
``We likes 'im'' a voice called out``becos 'e wos the right 
sort; 'e'd fight'e wouldif 'e was in Samavia now.'' 
Marco rapidly asked himself how much he might say. He decided 
and spoke to them all. 
``He is not part of a legend. He's part of Samavian history'' 
he said. ``I know something about him too.'' 
``How did you find it out?'' asked The Rat. 
``Because my father's a writerhe's obliged to have books and 
papersand he knows things. I like to readand I go into the 
free libraries. You can always get books and papers there. Then 
I ask my father questions. All the newspapers are full of things 
about Samavia just now.'' Marco felt that this was an 
explanation which betrayed nothing. It was true that no one 
could open a newspaper at this period without seeing news and 
stories of Samavia. 
The Rat saw possible vistas of information opening up before him. 
``Sit down here'' he said``and tell us what you know about 
him. Sit downyou fellows.'' 
There was nothing to sit on but the broken flagged pavementbut 
that was a small matter. Marco himself had sat on flags or bare 
ground often enough beforeand so had the rest of the lads. He 
took his place near The Ratand the others made a semicircle in 
front of them. The two leaders had joined forcesso to speak
and the followers fell into line at ``attention.'' 
Then the new-comer began to talk. It was a good storythat of 
the Lost Princeand Marco told it in a way which gave it 
reality. How could he help it? He knewas they could notthat 
it was real. He who had pored over maps of little Samavia since 
his seventh yearwho had studied them with his fatherknew it 
as a country he could have found his way to any part of if he had 
been dropped in any forest or any mountain of it. He knew every 
highway and bywayand in the capital city of Melzarr could 
almost have made his way blindfolded. He knew the palaces and 
the fortsthe churchesthe poor streets and the rich ones. His 
father had once shown him a plan of the royal palace which they 
had studied together until the boy knew each apartment and 
corridor in it by heart. But this he did not speak of. He knew 
it was one of the things to be silent about. But of the 
mountains and the emerald velvet meadows climbing their sides and 
only ending where huge bare crags and peaks beganhe could 
speak. He could make pictures of the wide fertile plains where 
herds of wild horses fedor raced and sniffed the air; he could 
describe the fertile valleys where clear rivers ran and flocks of 
sheep pastured on deep sweet grass. He could speak of them 
because he could offer a good enough reason for his knowledge of 
them. It was not the only reason he had for his knowledgebut 
it was one which would serve well enough. 
``That torn magazine you found had more than one article about 
Samavia in it'' he said to The Rat. ``The same man wrote four. 
I read them all in a free library. He had been to Samaviaand 
knew a great deal about it. He said it was one of the most 
beautiful countries he had ever traveled in--and the most 
fertile. That's what they all say of it.'' 
The group before him knew nothing of fertility or open country. 
They only knew London back streets and courts. Most of them had 
never traveled as far as the public parksand in fact scarcely 
believed in their existence. They were a rough lotand as they 
had stared at Marco at first sight of himso they continued to 
stare at him as he talked. When he told of the tall Samavians 
who had been like giants centuries agoand who had hunted the 
wild horses and captured and trained them to obedience by a sort 
of strong and gentle magictheir mouths fell open. This was the 
sort of thing to allure any boy's imagination. 
``Blimmeif I wouldn't 'ave liked ketchin' one o' them 'orses'' 
broke in one of the audienceand his exclamation was followed by 
a dozen of like nature from the others. Who wouldn't have liked 
``ketchin' one''? 
When he told of the deep endless-seeming forestsand of the 
herdsmen and shepherds who played on their pipes and made songs 
about high deeds and braverythey grinned with pleasure without 
knowing they were grinning. They did not really know that in 
this neglectedbroken-flagged inclosureshut in on one side by 
smoke- blackenedpoverty-stricken housesand on the other by a 
deserted and forgotten sunken graveyardthey heard the rustle of 
green forest boughs where birds nested closethe swish of the 
summer wind in the river reedsand the tinkle and laughter and 
rush of brooks running. 
They heard more or less of it all through the Lost Prince story
because Prince Ivor had loved lowland woods and mountain forests 
and all out-of-door life. When Marco pictured him tall and 
strong- limbed and youngwinning all the people when he rode 
smiling among themthe boys grinned again with unconscious 
pleasure. 
``Wisht 'e 'adn't got lost!'' some one cried out. 
When they heard of the unrest and dissatisfaction of the 
Samaviansthey began to get restless themselves. When Marco 
reached the part of the story in which the mob rushed into the 
palace and demanded their prince from the kingthey ejaculated 
scraps of bad language. ``The old geezer had got him hidden 
somewhere in some dungeonor he'd killed him out an' out--that's 
what he'd been up to!'' they clamored. ``Wisht the lot of us had 
been there then--wisht we 'ad. We'd 'ave give' 'im wot for
anyway!'' 
``An' 'im walkin' out o' the place so early in the mornin' just 
singin' like that! 'E 'ad 'im follered an' done for!'' they 
decided with various exclamations of boyish wrath. Somehowthe 
fact that the handsome royal lad had strolled into the morning 
sunshine singing made them more savage. Their language was 
extremely bad at this point. 
But if it was bad hereit became worse when the old shepherd 
found the young huntsman's half-dead body in the forest. He HAD 
``bin `done for' IN THE BACK! 'E'd bin give' no charnst. 
G-r-r-r!'' they groaned in chorus. ``Wisht'' THEY'D ``bin there 
when 'e'd bin 'it!'' They'd `` 'ave done fur somebody'' 
themselves. It was a story which had a queer effect on them. It 
made them think they saw things; it fired their blood; it set 
them wanting to fight for ideals they knew nothing 
about--adventurous thingsfor instanceand high and noble young 
princes who were full of the possibility of great and good deeds. 
Sitting upon the broken flagstones of the bit of ground behind 
the deserted graveyardthey were suddenly dragged into the world 
of romanceand noble young princes and great and good deeds 
became as real as the sunken gravestonesand far more 
interesting. 
And then the smuggling across the frontier of the unconscious 
prince in the bullock cart loaded with sheepskins! They held 
their breaths. Would the old shepherd get him past the line! 
Marcowho was lost in the recital himselftold it as if he had 
been present. He felt as if he hadand as this was the first 
time he had ever told it to thrilled listenershis imagination 
got him in its gripand his heart jumped in his breast as he was 
sure the old man's must have done when the guard stopped his cart 
and asked him what he was carrying out of the country. He knew 
he must have had to call up all his strength to force his voice 
into steadiness. 
And then the good monks! He had to stop to explain what a monk 
wasand when he described the solitude of the ancient monastery
and its walled gardens full of flowers and old simples to be used 
for healingand the wise monks walking in the silence and the 
sunthe boys stared a little helplesslybut still as if they 
were vaguely pleased by the picture. 
And then there was no more to tell--no more. There it broke off
and something like a low howl of dismay broke from the 
semicircle. 
``Aw!'' they protested``it 'adn't ought to stop there! Ain't 
there no more? Is that all there is?'' 
``It's all that was ever known really. And that last part might 
only be a sort of story made up by somebody. But I believe it 
myself.'' 
The Rat had listened with burning eyes. He had sat biting his 
finger-nailsas was a trick of his when he was excited or angry. 
``Tell you what!'' he exclaimed suddenly. ``This was what 
happened. It was some of the Maranovitch fellows that tried to 
kill him. They meant to kill his father and make their own man 
kingand they knew the people wouldn't stand it if young Ivor 
was alive. They just stabbed him in the backthe fiends! I 
dare say they heard the old shepherd comingand left him for 
dead and ran.'' 
``Rightoh! That was it!'' the lads agreed. ``Yer right there
Rat!'' 
``When he got well'' The Rat went on feverishlystill biting 
his nails``he couldn't go back. He was only a boy. The other 
fellow had been crownedand his followers felt strong because 
they'd just conquered the country. He could have done nothing 
without an armyand he was too young to raise one. Perhaps he 
thought he'd wait till he was old enough to know what to do. I 
dare say he went away and had to work for his living as if he'd 
never been a prince at all. Then perhaps sometime he married 
somebody and had a sonand told him as a secret who he was and 
all about Samavia.'' The Rat began to look vengeful. ``If I'd 
bin him I'd have told him not to forget what the Maranovitch had 
done to me. I'd have told him that if I couldn't get back the 
thronehe must see what he could do when he grew to be a man. 
And I'd have made him swearif he got it backto take it out of 
them or their children or their children's children in torture 
and killing. I'd have made him swear not to leave a Maranovitch 
alive. And I'd have told him thatif he couldn't do it in his 
lifehe must pass the oath on to his son and his son's sonas 
long as there was a Fedorovitch on earth. Wouldn't you?'' he 
demanded hotly of Marco. 
Marco's blood was also hotbut it was a different kind of blood
and he had talked too much to a very sane man. 
``No'' he said slowly. ``What would have been the use? It 
wouldn't have done Samavia any goodand it wouldn't have done 
him any good to torture and kill people. Better keep them alive 
and make them do things for the country. If you're a patriot
you think of the country.'' He wanted to add ``That's what my 
father says'' but he did not. 
``Torture 'em first and then attend to the country'' snapped The 
Rat. ``What would you have told your son if you'd been Ivor?'' 
``I'd have told him to learn everything about Samavia--and all 
the things kings have to know--and study things about laws and 
other countries--and about keeping silent--and about governing 
himself as if he were a general commanding soldiers in battle--so 
that he would never do anything he did not mean to do or could be 
ashamed of doing after it was over. And I'd have asked him to 
tell his son's sons to tell their sons to learn the same things. 
Soyou seehowever long the time wasthere would always be a 
king getting ready for Samavia--when Samavia really wanted him. 
And he would be a real king.'' 
He stopped himself suddenly and looked at the staring semicircle. 
``I didn't make that up myself'' he said. ``I have heard a man 
who reads and knows things say it. I believe the Lost Prince 
would have had the same thoughts. If he hadand told them to 
his sonthere has been a line of kings in training for Samavia 
for five hundred yearsand perhaps one is walking about the 
streets of Viennaor Budapestor Parisor London nowand he'd 
be ready if the people found out about him and called him.'' 
``Wisht they would!'' some one yelled. 
``It would be a queer secret to know all the time when no one 
else knew it'' The Rat communed with himself as it were``that 
you were a king and you ought to be on a throne wearing a crown. 
I wonder if it would make a chap look different?'' 
He laughed his squeaky laughand then turned in his sudden way 
to Marco: 
``But he'd be a fool to give up the vengeance. What is your 
name?'' 
``Marco Loristan. What's yours? It isn't The Rat really.'' 
``It's Jem RATcliffe. That's pretty near. Where do you live?'' 
``No. 7 Philibert Place.'' 
``This club is a soldiers' club'' said The Rat. ``It's called 
the Squad. I'm the captain. 'Tentionyou fellows! Let's show 
him.'' 
The semicircle sprang to its feet. There were about twelve lads 
altogetherandwhen they stood uprightMarco saw at once that 
for some reason they were accustomed to obeying the word of 
command with military precision. 
``Form in line!'' ordered The Rat. 
They did it at onceand held their backs and legs straight and 
their heads up amazingly well. Each had seized one of the sticks 
which had been stacked together like guns. 
The Rat himself sat up straight on his platform. There was 
actually something military in the bearing of his lean body. His 
voice lost its squeak and its sharpness became commanding. 
He put the dozen lads through the drill as if he had been a smart 
young officer. And the drill itself was prompt and smart enough 
to have done credit to practiced soldiers in barracks. It made 
Marco involuntarily stand very straight himselfand watch with 
surprised interest. 
``That's good!'' he exclaimed when it was at an end. ``How did 
you learn that?'' 
The Rat made a savage gesture. 
``If I'd had legs to stand onI'd have been a soldier!'' he 
said. ``I'd have enlisted in any regiment that would take me. I 
don't care for anything else.'' 
Suddenly his face changedand he shouted a command to his 
followers. 
``Turn your backs!'' he ordered. 
And they did turn their backs and looked through the railings of 
the old churchyard. Marco saw that they were obeying an order 
which was not new to them. The Rat had thrown his arm up over 
his eyes and covered them. He held it there for several moments
as if he did not want to be seen. Marco turned his back as the 
rest had done. All at once he understood thatthough The Rat 
was not cryingyet he was feeling something which another boy 
would possibly have broken down under. 
``All right!'' he shouted presentlyand dropped his 
ragged-sleeved arm and sat up straight again. 
``I want to go to war!'' he said hoarsely. ``I want to fight! I 
want to lead a lot of men into battle! And I haven't got any 
legs. Sometimes it takes the pluck out of me.'' 
``You've not grown up yet!'' said Marco. ``You might get strong. 
No one knows what is going to happen. How did you learn to drill 
the club?'' 
``I hang about barracks. I watch and listen. I follow soldiers. 
If I could get booksI'd read about wars. I can't go to 
libraries as you can. I can do nothing but scuffle about like a 
rat.'' 
``I can take you to some libraries'' said Marco. ``There are 
places where boys can get in. And I can get some papers from my 
father.'' 
``Can you?'' said The Rat. ``Do you want to join the club?'' 
``Yes!'' Marco answered. ``I'll speak to my father about it.'' 
He said it because the hungry longing for companionship in his 
own mind had found a sort of response in the queer hungry look in 
The Rat's eyes. He wanted to see him again. Strange creature as 
he wasthere was attraction in him. Scuffling about on his low 
wheeled platformhe had drawn this group of rough lads to him 
and made himself their commander. They obeyed him; they listened 
to his stories and harangues about war and soldiering; they let 
him drill them and give them orders. Marco knew thatwhen he 
told his father about himhe would be interested. The boy 
wanted to hear what Loristan would say. 
``I'm going home now'' he said. ``If you're going to be here 
to- morrowI will try to come.'' 
``We shall be here'' The Rat answered. ``It's our barracks.'' 
Marco drew himself up smartly and made his salute as if to a 
superior officer. Then he wheeled about and marched through the 
brick archwayand the sound of his boyish tread was as regular 
and decided as if he had been a man keeping time with his 
regiment. 
``He's been drilled himself'' said The Rat. ``He knows as much 
as I do.'' 
And he sat up and stared down the passage with new interest. 
``SILENCE IS STILL THE ORDER'' 
They were even poorer than usual just nowand the supper Marco 
and his father sat down to was scant enough. Lazarus stood 
upright behind his master's chair and served him with strictest 
ceremony. Their poor lodgings were always kept with a soldierly 
cleanliness and order. When an object could be polished it was 
forced to shineno grain of dust was allowed to lie undisturbed
and this perfection was not attained through the ministrations of 
a lodging house slavey. Lazarus made himself extremely popular 
by taking the work of caring for his master's rooms entirely out 
of the hands of the overburdened maids of all work. He had 
learned to do many things in his young days in barracks. He 
carried about with him coarse bits of table-cloths and towels
which he laundered as if they had been the finest linen. He 
mendedhe patchedhe darnedand in the hardest fight the poor 
must face--the fight with dirt and dinginess--he always held his 
own. They had nothing but dry bread and coffee this eveningbut 
Lazarus had made the coffee and the bread was good. 
As Marco atehe told his father the story of The Rat and his 
followers. Loristan listenedas the boy had known he would
with the far-offintently-thinking smile in his dark eyes. It 
was a look which always fascinated Marco because it meant that he 
was thinking so many things. Perhaps he would tell some of them 
and perhaps he would not. His spell over the boy lay in the fact 
that to him he seemed like a wonderful book of which one had only 
glimpses. It was full of pictures and adventures which were 
trueand one could not help continually making guesses about 
them. Yesthe feeling that Marco had was that his father's 
attraction for him was a sort of spelland that others felt the 
same thing. When he stood and talked to commoner peoplehe held 
his tall body with singular quiet grace which was like power. He 
never stirred or moved himself as if he were nervous or 
uncertain. He could hold his hands (he had beautiful slender and 
strong hands) quite still; he could stand on his fine arched feet 
without shuffling them. He could sit without any ungrace or 
restlessness. His mind knew what his body should doand gave it 
orders without speakingand his fine limbs and muscles and 
nerves obeyed. So he could stand still and at ease and look at 
the people he was talking toand they always looked at him and 
listened to what he saidand somehowcourteous and 
uncondescending as his manner unfailingly wasit used always to 
seem to Marco as if he were ``giving an audience'' as kings gave 
them. 
He had often seen people bow very low when they went away from 
himand more than once it had happened that some humble person 
had stepped out of his presence backwardas people do when 
retiring before a sovereign. And yet his bearing was the 
quietest and least assuming in the world. 
``And they were talking about Samavia? And he knew the story of 
the Lost Prince?'' he said ponderingly. ``Even in that place!'' 
``He wants to hear about wars--he wants to talk about them'' 
Marco answered. ``If he could stand and were old enoughhe 
would go and fight for Samavia himself.'' 
``It is a blood-drenched and sad place now!'' said Loristan. 
``The people are mad when they are not heartbroken and 
terrified.'' 
Suddenly Marco struck the table with a sounding slap of his boy's 
hand. He did it before he realized any intention in his own 
mind. 
``Why should either one of the Iarovitch or one of the 
Maranovitch be king!'' he cried. ``They were only savage 
peasants when they first fought for the crown hundreds of years 
ago. The most savage one got itand they have been fighting 
ever since. Only the Fedorovitch were born kings. There is only 
one man in the world who has the right to the throne--and I don't 
know whether he is in the world or not. But I believe he is! I 
do!'' 
Loristan looked at his hot twelve-year-old face with a reflective 
curiousness. He saw that the flame which had leaped up in him 
had leaped without warning--just as a fierce heart-beat might 
have shaken him. 
``You mean--?'' he suggested softly. 
``Ivor Fedorovitch. King Ivor he ought to be. And the people 
would obey himand the good days would come again.'' 
``It is five hundred years since Ivor Fedorovitch left the good 
monks.'' Loristan still spoke softly. 
``ButFather'' Marco protested``even The Rat said what you 
said--that he was too young to be able to come back while the 
Maranovitch were in power. And he would have to work and have a 
homeand perhaps he is as poor as we are. But when he had a son 
he would call him Ivor and TELL him--and his son would call HIS 
son Ivor and tell HIM--and it would go on and on. They could 
never call their eldest sons anything but Ivor. And what you 
said about the training would be true. There would always be a 
king being trained for Samaviaand ready to be called.'' In the 
fire of his feelings he sprang from his chair and stood upright. 
``Why! There may be a king of Samavia in some city now who knows 
he is kingandwhen he reads about the fighting among his 
peoplehis blood gets red-hot. They're his own people--his very 
own! He ought to go to them--he ought to go and tell them who he 
is! Don't you think he oughtFather?'' 
``It would not be as easy as it seems to a boy'' Loristan 
answered. ``There are many countries which would have something 
to say-- Russia would have her wordand Austriaand Germany; 
and England never is silent. Butif he were a strong man and 
knew how to make strong friends in silencehe might sometime be 
able to declare himself openly.'' 
``But if he is anywheresome one--some Samavian--ought to go and 
look for him. It ought to be a Samavian who is very clever and a 
patriot--'' He stopped at a flash of recognition. ``Father!'' 
he cried out. ``Father! You--you are the one who could find him 
if any one in the world could. But perhaps--'' and he stopped a 
moment again because new thoughts rushed through his mind. 
``Have YOU ever looked for him?'' he asked hesitating. 
Perhaps he had asked a stupid question--perhaps his father had 
always been looking for himperhaps that was his secret and his 
work. 
But Loristan did not look as if he thought him stupid. Quite the 
contrary. He kept his handsome eyes fixed on him still in that 
curious wayas if he were studying him--as if he were much more 
than twelve years oldand he were deciding to tell him 
something. 
``Comrade at arms'' he saidwith the smile which always 
gladdened Marco's heart``you have kept your oath of allegiance 
like a man. You were not seven years old when you took it. You 
are growing older. Silence is still the orderbut you are man 
enough to be told more.'' He paused and looked downand then 
looked up againspeaking in a low tone. ``I have not looked for 
him'' he said``because--I believe I know where he is.'' 
Marco caught his breath. 
``Father!'' He said only that word. He could say no more. He 
knew he must not ask questions. ``Silence is still the order.'' 
But as they faced each other in their dingy room at the back of 
the shabby house on the side of the roaring common road--as 
Lazarus stood stock- still behind his father's chair and kept his 
eyes fixed on the empty coffee cups and the dry bread plateand 
everything looked as poor as things always did--there was a king 
of Samavia--an Ivor Fedorovitch with the blood of the Lost Prince 
in his veins--alive in some town or city this moment! And 
Marco's own father knew where he was! 
He glanced at Lazarusbutthough the old soldier's face looked 
as expressionless as if it were cut out of woodMarco realized 
that he knew this thing and had always known it. He had been a 
comrade at arms all his life. He continued to stare at the bread 
plate. 
Loristan spoke again and in an even lower voice. ``The Samavians 
who are patriots and thinkers'' he said``formed themselves 
into a secret party about eighty years ago. They formed it when 
they had no reason for hopebut they formed it because one of 
them discovered that an Ivor Fedorovitch was living. He was head 
forester on a great estate in the Austrian Alps. The nobleman he 
served had always thought him a mystery because he had the 
bearing and speech of a man who had not been born a servantand 
his methods in caring for the forests and game were those of a 
man who was educated and had studied his subject. But he never 
was familiar or assumingand never professed superiority over 
any of his fellows. He was a man of great statureand was 
extraordinarily brave and silent. The nobleman who was his 
master made a sort of companion of him when they hunted together. 
Once he took him with him when he traveled to Samavia to hunt 
wild horses. He found that he knew the country strangely well
and that he was familiar with Samavian hunting and customs. 
Before he returned to Austriathe man obtained permission to go 
to the mountains alone. He went among the shepherds and made 
friends among themasking many questions. 
One night around a forest fire he heard the songs about the Lost 
Prince which had not been forgotten even after nearly five 
hundred years had passed. The shepherds and herdsmen talked 
about Prince Ivorand told old stories about himand related 
the prophecy that he would come back and bring again Samavia's 
good days. He might come only in the body of one of his 
descendantsbut it would be his spirit which camebecause his 
spirit would never cease to love Samavia. One very old shepherd 
tottered to his feet and lifted his face to the myriad stars 
bestrewn like jewels in the blue sky above the forest treesand 
he wept and prayed aloud that the great God would send their king 
to them. And the stranger huntsman stood upright also and lifted 
his face to the stars. Andthough he said no wordthe herdsman 
nearest to him saw tears on his cheeks--greatheavy tears. The 
next daythe stranger went to the monastery where the order of 
good monks lived who had taken care of the Lost Prince. When he 
had left Samaviathe secret society was formedand the members 
of it knew that an Ivor Fedorovitch had passed through his 
ancestors' country as the servant of another man. But the secret 
society was only a small oneandthough it has been growing 
ever since and it has done good deeds and good work in secret
the huntsman died an old man before it was strong enough even to 
dare to tell Samavia what it knew.'' 
``Had he a son?'' cried Marco. ``Had he a son?'' 
``Yes. He had a son. His name was Ivor. And he was trained as 
I told you. That part I knew to be truethough I should have 
believed it was true even if I had not known. There has ALWAYS 
been a king ready for Samavia--even when he has labored with his 
hands and served others. Each one took the oath of allegiance.'' 
``As I did?'' said Marcobreathless with excitement. When one 
is twelve years oldto be so near a Lost Prince who might end 
wars is a thrilling thing. 
``The same'' answered Loristan. 
Marco threw up his hand in salute. 
`` `Here grows a man for Samavia! God be thanked!' '' he quoted. 
``And HE is somewhere? And you know?'' 
Loristan bent his head in acquiescence. 
``For years much secret work has been doneand the Fedorovitch 
party has grown until it is much greater and more powerful than 
the other parties dream. The larger countries are tired of the 
constant war and disorder in Samavia. Their interests are 
disturbed by themand they are deciding that they must have 
peace and laws which can be counted on. There have been Samavian 
patriots who have spent their lives in trying to bring this about 
by making friends in the most powerful capitalsand working 
secretly for the future good of their own land. Because Samavia 
is so small and uninfluentialit has taken a long time but when 
King Maran and his family were assassinated and the war broke 
outthere were great powers which began to say that if some king 
of good blood and reliable characteristics were given the crown
he should be upheld.'' 
``HIS blood''-- Marco's intensity made his voice drop almost to 
a whisper--``HIS blood has been trained for five hundred years
Father! If it comes true--'' though he laughed a littlehe was 
obliged to wink his eyes hard because suddenly he felt tears rush 
into themwhich no boy likes--``the shepherds will have to make 
a new song --it will have to be a shouting one about a prince 
going away and a king coming back!'' 
``They are a devout people and observe many an ancient rite and 
ceremony. They will chant prayers and burn altar-fires on their 
mountain sides'' Loristan said. ``But the end is not yet--the 
end is not yet. Sometimes it seems that perhaps it is near--but 
God knows!'' 
Then there leaped back upon Marco the story he had to tellbut 
which he had held back for the last--the story of the man who 
spoke Samavian and drove in the carriage with the King. He knew 
now that it might mean some important thing which he could not 
have before suspected. 
``There is something I must tell you'' he said. 
He had learned to relate incidents in few but clear words when he 
related them to his father. It had been part of his training. 
Loristan had said that he might sometime have a story to tell 
when he had but few moments to tell it in--some story which meant 
life or death to some one. He told this one quickly and well. 
He made Loristan see the well-dressed man with the deliberate 
manner and the keen eyesand he made him hear his voice when he 
said``Tell your father that you are a very well-trained lad.'' 
``I am glad he said that. He is a man who knows what training 
is'' said Loristan. ``He is a person who knows what all Europe 
is doingand almost all that it will do. He is an ambassador 
from a powerful and great country. If he saw that you are a 
well-trained and fine ladit might--it might even be good for 
Samavia.'' 
``Would it matter that _I_ was well-trained? COULD it matter to 
Samavia?'' Marco cried out. 
Loristan paused for a moment--watching him gravely--looking him 
over--his bigwell-built boy's framehis shabby clothesand 
his eagerly burning eyes. 
He smiled one of his slow wonderful smiles. 
``Yes. It might even matter to Samavia!'' he answered. 
THE DRILL AND THE SECRET PARTY 
Loristan did not forbid Marco to pursue his acquaintance with The 
Rat and his followers. 
``You will find out for yourself whether they are friends for you 
or not'' he said. ``You will know in a few daysand then you 
can make your own decision. You have known lads in various 
countriesand you are a good judge of themI think. You will 
soon see whether they are going to be MEN or mere rabble. The 
Rat now--how does he strike you?'' 
And the handsome eyes held their keen look of questioning. 
``He'd be a brave soldier if he could stand'' said Marco
thinking him over. ``But he might be cruel.'' 
``A lad who might make a brave soldier cannot be disdainedbut a 
man who is cruel is a fool. Tell him that from me'' Loristan 
answered. ``He wastes force--his own and the force of the one he 
treats cruelly. Only a fool wastes force.'' 
``May I speak of you sometimes?'' asked Marco. 
``Yes. You will know how. You will remember the things about 
which silence is the order.'' 
``I never forget them'' said Marco. ``I have been trying not 
tofor such a long time.'' 
``You have succeeded wellComrade!'' returned Loristanfrom his 
writing-tableto which he had gone and where he was turning over 
papers. 
A strong impulse overpowered the boy. He marched over to the 
table and stood very straightmaking his soldierly young salute
his whole body glowing. 
``Father!'' he said``you don't know how I love you! I wish you 
were a general and I might die in battle for you. When I look at 
youI long and long to do something for you a boy could not do. 
I would die of a thousand wounds rather than disobey you--or 
Samavia!'' 
He seized Loristan's handand knelt on one knee and kissed it. 
An English or American boy could not have done such a thing from 
unaffected natural impulse. But he was of warm Southern blood. 
``I took my oath of allegiance to youFatherwhen I took it to 
Samavia. It seems as if you were Samaviatoo'' he saidand 
kissed his hand again. 
Loristan had turned toward him with one of the movements which 
were full of dignity and grace. Marcolooking up at himfelt 
that there was always a certain remote stateliness in him which 
made it seem quite natural that any one should bend the knee and 
kiss his hand. 
A sudden great tenderness glowed in his father's face as he 
raised the boy and put his hand on his shoulder. 
``Comrade'' he said``you don't know how much I love you--and 
what reason there is that we should love each other! You don't 
know how I have been watching youand thanking God each year 
that here grew a man for Samavia. That I know you are--a MAN
though you have lived but twelve years. Twelve years may grow a 
man--or prove that a man will never growthough a human thing he 
may remain for ninety years. This year may be full of strange 
things for both of us. We cannot know WHAT I may have to ask you 
to do for me--and for Samavia. Perhaps such a thing as no 
twelve-year- old boy has ever done before.'' 
``Every night and every morning'' said Marco``I shall pray 
that I may be called to do itand that I may do it well.'' 
``You will do it wellComradeif you are called. That I could 
make oath'' Loristan answered him. 
The Squad had collected in the inclosure behind the church when 
Marco appeared at the arched end of the passage. The boys were 
drawn up with their riflesbut they all wore a rather dogged and 
sullen look. The explanation which darted into Marco's mind was 
that this was because The Rat was in a bad humor. He sat 
crouched together on his platform biting his nails fiercelyhis 
elbows on his updrawn kneeshis face twisted into a hideous 
scowl. He did not look aroundor even look up from the cracked 
flagstone of the pavement on which his eyes were fixed. 
Marco went forward with military step and stopped opposite to him 
with prompt salute. 
``Sorry to be latesir'' he saidas if he had been a private 
speaking to his colonel. 
``It's 'imRat! 'E's comeRat!'' the Squad shouted. ``Look at 
'im!'' 
But The Rat would not lookand did not even move. 
``What's the matter?'' said Marcowith less ceremony than a 
private would have shown. ``There's no use in my coming here if 
you don't want me.'' 
`` 'E's got a grouch on 'cos you're late!'' called out the head 
of the line. ``No doin' nothin' when 'e's got a grouch on.'' 
``I sha'n't try to do anything'' said Marcohis boy-face 
setting itself into good stubborn lines. ``That's not what I 
came here for. I came to drill. I've been with my father. He 
comes first. I can't join the Squad if he doesn't come first. 
We're not on active serviceand we're not in barracks.'' 
Then The Rat moved sharply and turned to look at him. 
``I thought you weren't coming at all!'' he snapped and growled 
at once. ``My father said you wouldn't. He said you were a 
young swell for all your patched clothes. He said your father 
would think he was a swelleven if he was only a penny-a-liner 
on newspapersand he wouldn't let you have anything to do with a 
vagabond and a nuisance. Nobody begged you to join. Your father 
can go to blazes!'' 
``Don't you speak in that way about my father'' said Marco
quite quietly``because I can't knock you down.'' 
``I'll get up and let you!'' began The Ratimmediately white and 
raging. ``I can stand up with two sticks. I'll get up and let 
you!'' 
``Noyou won't'' said Marco. ``If you want to know what my 
father saidI can tell you. He said I could come as often as I 
liked --till I found out whether we should be friends or not. He 
says I shall find that out for myself.'' 
It was a strange thing The Rat did. It must always be remembered 
of him that his wretched fatherwho had each year sunk lower and 
lower in the under-worldhad been a gentleman oncea man who 
had been familiar with good manners and had been educated in the 
customs of good breeding. Sometimes when he was drunkand 
sometimes when he was partly soberhe talked to The Rat of many 
things the boy would otherwise never have heard of. That was why 
the lad was different from the other vagabonds. Thisalsowas 
why he suddenly altered the whole situation by doing this strange 
and unexpected thing. He utterly changed his expression and 
voicefixing his sharp eyes shrewdly on Marco's. It was almost 
as if he were asking him a conundrum. He knew it would have been 
one to most boys of the class he appeared outwardly to belong to. 
He would either know the answer or he wouldn't. 
``I beg your pardon'' The Rat said. 
That was the conundrum. It was what a gentleman and an officer 
would have saidif he felt he had been mistaken or rude. He had 
heard that from his drunken father. 
``I beg yours--for being late'' said Marco. 
That was the right answer. It was the one another officer and 
gentleman would have made. It settled the matter at onceand it 
settled more than was apparent at the moment. It decided that 
Marco was one of those who knew the things The Rat's father had 
once known--the things gentlemen do and say and think. Not 
another word was said. It was all right. Marco slipped into 
line with the Squadand The Rat sat erect with his military 
bearing and began his drill: 
``Squad! 
`` 'Tention! 
``Number! 
``Slope arms! 
``Form fours! 
``Right! 
``Quick march! 
``Halt! 
``Left turn! 
``Order arms! 
``Stand at ease! 
``Stand easy!'' 
They did it so well that it was quite wonderful when one 
considered the limited space at their disposal. They had 
evidently done it oftenand The Rat had been not only a smart
but a severeofficer. This morning they repeated the exercise a 
number of timesand even varied it with Review Drillwith which 
they seemed just as familiar. 
``Where did you learn it?'' The Rat askedwhen the arms were 
stacked again and Marco was sitting by him as he had sat the 
previous day. 
``From an old soldier. And I like to watch itas you do.'' 
``If you were a young swell in the Guardsyou couldn't be 
smarter at it'' The Rat said. ``The way you hold yourself! The 
way you stand! You've got it! Wish I was you! It comes natural 
to you.'' 
``I've always liked to watch it and try to do it myself. I did 
when I was a little fellow'' answered Marco. 
``I've been trying to kick it into these chaps for more than a 
year'' said The Rat. ``A nice job I had of it! It nearly made 
me sick at first.'' 
The semicircle in front of him only giggled or laughed outright. 
The members of it seemed to take very little offense at his 
cavalier treatment of them. He had evidently something to give 
them which was entertaining enough to make up for his tyranny and 
indifference. He thrust his hand into one of the pockets of his 
ragged coatand drew out a piece of newspaper. 
``My father brought home thiswrapped round a loaf of bread'' 
he said. ``See what it says there!'' 
He handed it to Marcopointing to some words printed in large 
letters at the head of a column. Marco looked at it and sat very 
still. 
The words he read were: ``The Lost Prince.'' 
``Silence is still the order'' was the first thought which 
flashed through his mind. ``Silence is still the order.'' 
``What does it mean?'' he said aloud. 
``There isn't much of it. I wish there was more'' The Rat said 
fretfully. ``Read and see. Of course they say it mayn't be 
true--but I believe it is. They say that people think some one 
knows where he is--at least where one of his descendants is. 
It'd be the same thing. He'd be the real king. If he'd just 
show himselfit might stop all the fighting. Just read.'' 
Marco readand his skin prickled as the blood went racing 
through his body. But his face did not change. There was a 
sketch of the story of the Lost Prince to begin with. It had 
been regarded by most peoplethe article saidas a sort of 
legend. Now there was a definite rumor that it was not a legend 
at allbut a part of the long past history of Samavia. It was 
said that through the centuries there had always been a party 
secretly loyal to the memory of this worshiped and lost 
Fedorovitch. It was even said that from father to son
generation after generation after generationhad descended the 
oath of fealty to him and his descendants. The people had made 
a god of himand nowromantic as it seemedit was beginning to 
be an open secret that some persons believed that a descendant 
had been found--a Fedorovitch worthy of his young ancestor--and 
that a certain Secret Party also held thatif he were called 
back to the throne of Samaviathe interminable wars and 
bloodshed would reach an end. 
The Rat had begun to bite his nails fast. 
``Do you believe he's found?'' he asked feverishly. ``DON'T YOU? 
I do!'' 
``I wonder where he isif it's true? I wonder! Where?'' 
exclaimed Marco. He could say thatand he might seem as eager 
as he felt. 
The Squad all began to jabber at once. ``Yuswhere wos'e? 
There is no knowin'. It'd be likely to be in some o' these 
furrin places. England'd be too far from Samavia. 'Ow far off 
wos Samavia? Wos it in Rooshaor where the Frenchies wereor 
the Germans? But wherever 'e wos'e'd be the right sortan' 
'e'd be the sort a chap'd turn and look at in the street.'' 
The Rat continued to bite his nails. 
``He might be anywhere'' he saidhis small fierce face glowing. 
``That's what I like to think about. He might be passing in the 
street outside there; he might be up in one of those houses'' 
jerking his head over his shoulder toward the backs of the 
inclosing dwellings. ``Perhaps he knows he's a kingand perhaps 
he doesn't. He'd know if what you said yesterday was true--about 
the king always being made ready for Samavia.'' 
``Yeshe'd know'' put in Marco. 
``Wellit'd be finer if he did'' went on The Rat. ``However 
poor and shabby he washe'd know the secret all the time. And 
if people sneered at himhe'd sneer at them and laugh to 
himself. I dare say he'd walk tremendously straight and hold his 
head up. If I was himI'd like to make people suspect a bit 
that I wasn't like the common lot o' them.'' He put out his hand 
and pushed Marco excitedly. ``Let's work out plots for him!'' he 
said. ``That'd be a splendid game! Let's pretend we're the 
Secret Party!'' 
He was tremendously excited. Out of the ragged pocket he fished 
a piece of chalk. Then he leaned forward and began to draw 
something quickly on the flagstones closest to his platform. The 
Squad leaned forward alsoquite breathlesslyand Marco leaned 
forward. The chalk was sketching a roughly outlined mapand he 
knew what map it wasbefore The Rat spoke. 
``That's a map of Samavia'' he said. ``It was in that piece of 
magazine I told you about--the one where I read about Prince 
Ivor. I studied it until it fell to pieces. But I could draw it 
myself by that timeso it didn't matter. I could draw it with 
my eyes shut. That's the capital city'' pointing to a spot. 
``It's called Melzarr. The palace is there. It's the place 
where the first of the Maranovitch killed the last of the 
Fedorovitch--the bad chap that was Ivor's father. It's the 
palace Ivor wandered out of singing the shepherds' song that 
early morning. It's where the throne is that his descendant 
would sit upon to be crowned--that he's GOING to sit upon. I 
believe he is! Let's swear he shall!'' He flung down his piece 
of chalk and sat up. ``Give me two sticks. Help me to get up.'' 
Two of the Squad sprang to their feet and came to him. Each 
snatched one of the sticks from the stacked riflesevidently 
knowing what he wanted. Marco rose tooand watched with sudden
keen curiosity. He had thought that The Rat could not stand up
but it seemed that he couldin a fashion of his ownand he was 
going to do it. The boys lifted him by his armsset him against 
the stone coping of the iron railings of the churchyardand put 
a stick in each of his hands. They stood at his sidebut he 
supported himself. 
`` 'E could get about if 'e 'ad the money to buy crutches!'' said 
one whose name was Cadand he said it quite proudly. The queer 
thing that Marco had noticed was that the ragamuffins were proud 
of The Ratand regarded him as their lord and master. ``--'E 
could get about an' stand as well as any one'' added the other
and he said it in the tone of one who boasts. His name was Ben. 
``I'm going to stand nowand so are the rest of you'' said The 
Rat. ``Squad! 'Tention! You at the head of the line'' to 
Marco. They were in line in a moment--straightshoulders back
chins up. And Marco stood at the head. 
``We're going to take an oath'' said The Rat. ``It's an oath of 
allegiance. Allegiance means faithfulness to a thing--a king or 
a country. Ours means allegiance to the King of Samavia. We 
don't know where he isbut we swear to be faithful to himto 
fight for himto plot for himto DIE for himand to bring him 
back to his throne!'' The way in which he flung up his head when 
he said the word ``die'' was very fine indeed. ``We are the 
Secret Party. We will work in the dark and find out things--and 
run risks--and collect an army no one will know anything about 
until it is strong enough to suddenly rise at a secret signal
and overwhelm the Maranovitch and Iarovitchand seize their 
forts and citadels. No one even knows we are alive. We are a 
silentsecret thing that never speaks aloud!'' 
Silent and secret as they werehoweverthey spoke aloud at this 
juncture. It was such a grand idea for a gameand so full of 
possible larksthat the Squad broke into a howl of an exultant 
cheer. 
``Hooray!'' they yelled. ``Hooray for the oath of 'legiance! 
'Ray! 'ray! 'ray!'' 
``Shut upyou swine!'' shouted The Rat. ``Is that the way you 
keep yourself secret? You'll call the police inyou fools! 
Look at HIM!'' pointing to Marco. ``He's got some sense.'' 
Marcoin facthad not made any sound. 
``Come hereyou Cad and Benand put me back on my wheels'' 
raged the Squad's commander. ``I'll not make up the game at all. 
It's no use with a lot of fat-headraw recruits like you.'' 
The line broke and surrounded him in a momentpleading and 
urging. 
``AwRat! We forgot. It's the primest game you've ever thought 
out! Rat! Rat! Don't get a grouch on! We'll keep stillRat! 
Primest lark of all 'll be the sneakin' about an' keepin' quiet. 
AwRat! Keep it up!'' 
``Keep it up yourselves!'' snarled The Rat. 
``Not another cove of us could do it but you! Not one! There's 
no other cove could think it out. You're the only chap that can 
think out things. You thought out the Squad! That's why you're 
captain!'' 
This was true. He was the one who could invent entertainment for 
themthese street lads who had nothing. Out of that nothing he 
could create what excited themand give them something to fill 
emptyuselessoften cold or wet or foggyhours. That made him 
their captain and their pride. 
The Rat began to yieldthough grudgingly. He pointed again to 
Marcowho had not movedbut stood still at attention. 
``Look at HIM!'' he said. ``He knows enough to stand where he's 
put until he's ordered to break line. He's a soldierhe is--not 
a raw recruit that don't know the goose-step. He's been in 
barracks before.'' 
But after this outbursthe deigned to go on. 
``Here's the oath'' he said. ``We swear to stand any torture 
and submit in silence to any death rather than betray our secret 
and our king. We will obey in silence and in secret. We will 
swim through seas of blood and fight our way through lakes of 
fireif we are ordered. Nothing shall bar our way. All we do 
and say and think is for our country and our king. If any of you 
have anything to sayspeak out before you take the oath.'' 
He saw Marco move a littleand he made a sign to him. 
``You'' he said. ``Have you something to say?'' 
Marco turned to him and saluted. 
``Here stand ten men for Samavia. God be thanked!'' he said. He 
dared say that muchand he felt as if his father himself would 
have told him that they were the right words. 
The Rat thought they were. Somehow he felt that they struck 
home. He reddened with a sudden emotion. 
``Squad!'' he said. ``I'll let you give three cheers on that. 
It's for the last time. We'll begin to be quiet afterward.'' 
And to the Squad's exultant relief he led the cheerand they 
were allowed to make as much uproar as they liked. They liked to 
make a great dealand when it was at an endit had done them 
good and made them ready for business. 
The Rat opened the drama at once. Never surely had there ever 
before been heard a conspirator's whisper as hollow as his. 
``Secret Ones'' he said``it is midnight. We meet in the 
depths of darkness. We dare not meet by day. When we meet in 
the daytimewe pretend not to know each other. We are meeting 
now in a Samavian city where there is a fortress. We shall have 
to take it when the secret sign is given and we make our rising. 
We are getting everything readyso thatwhen we find the king
the secret sign can be given.'' 
``What is the name of the city we are in?'' whispered Cad. 
``It is called Larrina. It is an important seaport. We must 
take it as soon as we rise. The next time we meet I will bring a 
dark lantern and draw a map and show it to you.'' 
It would have been a great advantage to the game if Marco could 
have drawn for them the map he could have madea map which would 
have shown every fortress--every stronghold and every weak place. 
Being a boyhe knew what excitement would have thrilled each 
breasthow they would lean forward and pile question on 
questionpointing to this place and to that. He had learned to 
draw the map before he was tenand he had drawn it again and 
again because there had been times when his father had told him 
that changes had taken place. Ohyes! he could have drawn a map 
which would have moved them to a frenzy of joy. But he sat 
silent and listenedonly speaking when he asked a questionas 
if he knew nothing more about Samavia than The Rat did. What a 
Secret Party they were! They drew themselves together in the 
closest of circles; they spoke in unearthly whispers. 
``A sentinel ought to be posted at the end of the passage'' 
Marco whispered. 
``Bentake your gun!'' commanded The Rat. 
Ben rose stealthilyandshouldering his weaponcrept on tiptoe 
to the opening. There he stood on guard. 
``My father says there's been a Secret Party in Samavia for a 
hundred years'' The Rat whispered. 
``Who told him?'' asked Marco. 
``A man who has been in Samavia'' answered The Rat. ``He said 
it was the most wonderful Secret Party in the worldbecause it 
has worked and waited so longand never given upthough it has 
had no reason for hoping. It began among some shepherds and 
charcoal-burners who bound themselves by an oath to find the Lost 
Prince and bring him back to the throne. There were too few of 
them to do anything against the Maranovitchand when the first 
lot found they were growing oldthey made their sons take the 
same oath. It has been passed on from generation to generation
and in each generation the band has grown. No one really knows 
how large it is nowbut they say that there are people in nearly 
all the countries in Europe who belong to it in dead secretand 
are sworn to help it when they are called. They are only 
waiting. Some are rich people who will give moneyand some are 
poor ones who will slip across the frontier to fight or to help 
to smuggle in arms. They even say that for all these years there 
have been arms made in caves in the mountainsand hidden there 
year after year. There are men who are called Forgers of the 
Swordand theyand their fathersand grandfathersand 
great-grandfathers have always made swords and stored them in 
caverns no one knows ofhidden caverns underground.'' 
Marco spoke aloud the thought which had come into his mind as he 
listeneda thought which brought fear to him. ``If the people 
in the streets talk about itthey won't be hidden long.'' 
``It isn't common talkmy father says. Only very few have 
guessedand most of them think it is part of the Lost Prince 
legend'' said The Rat. ``The Maranovitch and Iarovitch laugh at 
it. They have always been great fools. They're too full of 
their own swagger to think anything can interfere with them.'' 
``Do you talk much to your father?'' Marco asked him. 
The Rat showed his sharp white teeth in a grin. 
``I know what you're thinking of'' he said. ``You're 
remembering that I said he was always drunk. So he isexcept 
when he's only HALF drunk. And when he's HALF drunkhe's the 
most splendid talker in London. He remembers everything he has 
ever learned or read or heard since he was born. I get him going 
and listen. He wants to talk and I want to hear. I found out 
almost everything I know in that way. He didn't know he was 
teaching mebut he was. He goes back into being a gentleman 
when he's half drunk.'' 
``If--if you care about the Samaviansyou'd better ask him not 
to tell people about the Secret Party and the Forgers of the 
Sword'' suggested Marco. 
The Rat started a little. 
``That's true!'' he said. ``You're sharper than I am. It 
oughtn't to be blabbed aboutor the Maranovitch might hear 
enough to make them stop and listen. I'll get him to promise. 
There's one queer thing about him'' he added very slowlyas if 
he were thinking it over``I suppose it's part of the gentleman 
that's left in him. If he makes a promisehe never breaks it
drunk or sober.'' 
``Ask him to make one'' said Marco. The next moment he changed 
the subject because it seemed the best thing to do. ``Go on and 
tell us what our own Secret Party is to do. We're forgetting'' 
he whispered. 
The Rat took up his game with renewed keenness. It was a game 
which attracted him immensely because it called upon his 
imagination and held his audience spellboundbesides plunging 
him into war and strategy. 
``We're preparing for the rising'' he said. ``It must come 
soon. We've waited so long. The caverns are stacked with arms. 
The Maranovitch and the Iarovitch are fighting and using all 
their soldiersand now is our time.'' He stopped and thought
his elbows on his knees. He began to bite his nails again. 
``The Secret Signal must be given'' he said. Then he stopped 
againand the Squad held its breath and pressed nearer with a 
softly shuffling sound. ``Two of the Secret Ones must be chosen 
by lot and sent forth'' he went on; and the Squad almost brought 
ruin and disgrace upon itself by wanting to cheer againand only 
just stopping itself in time. ``Must be chosen BY LOT'' The Rat 
repeatedlooking from one face to another. ``Each one will take 
his life in his hand when he goes forth. He may have to die a 
thousand deathsbut he must go. He must steal in silence and 
disguise from one country to another. Wherever there is one of 
the Secret Partywhether he is in a hovel or on a thronethe 
messengers must go to him in darkness and stealth and give him 
the sign. It will mean`The hour has come. God save Samavia!' 
'' 
``God save Samavia!'' whispered the Squadexcitedly. And
because they saw Marco raise his hand to his foreheadevery one 
of them saluted. 
They all began to whisper at once. 
``Let's draw lots now. Let's draw lotsRat. Don't let's 'ave 
no waitin'.'' 
The Rat began to look about him with dread anxiety. He seemed to 
be examining the sky. 
``The darkness is not as thick as it was'' he whispered. 
``Midnight has passed. The dawn of day will be upon us. If any 
one has a piece of paper or a stringwe will draw the lots 
before we part.'' 
Cad had a piece of stringand Marco had a knife which could be 
used to cut it into lengths. This The Rat did himself. Then
after shutting his eyes and mixing themhe held them in his hand 
ready for the drawing. 
``The Secret One who draws the longest lot is chosen. The Secret 
One who draws the shortest is chosen'' he said solemnly. 
The drawing was as solemn as his tone. Each boy wanted to draw 
either the shortest lot or the longest one. The heart of each 
thumped somewhat as he drew his piece of string. 
When the drawing was at an endeach showed his lot. The Rat had 
drawn the shortest piece of stringand Marco had drawn the 
longest one. 
``Comrade!'' said The Rattaking his hand. ``We will face death 
and danger together!'' 
``God save Samavia!'' answered Marco. 
And the game was at an end for the day. The primest thingthe 
Squad saidThe Rat had ever made up for them. `` 'E wos a 
wonderhe wos!'' 
``THE LAMP IS LIGHTED!'' 
On his way homeMarco thought of nothing but the story he must 
tell his fatherthe story the stranger who had been to Samavia 
had told The Rat's father. He felt that it must be a true story 
and not merely an invention. The Forgers of the Sword must be 
real menand the hidden subterranean caverns stacked through the 
centuries with arms must be realtoo. And if they were real
surely his father was one of those who knew the secret. His 
thoughts ran very fast. The Rat's boyish invention of the rising 
was only part of a gamebut how natural it would be that 
sometime--perhaps before long--there would be a real rising! 
Surely there would be one if the Secret Party had grown so 
strongand if many weapons and secret friends in other 
countries were ready and waiting. During all these yearshidden 
work and preparation would have been going on continuallyeven 
though it was preparation for an unknown day. A party which had 
lasted so long--which passed its oath on from generation to 
generation--must be of a deadly determination. 
What might it not have made ready in its caverns and secret 
meeting- places! He longed to reach home and tell his fatherat 
onceall he had heard. He recalled to mindword for wordall 
that The Rat had been toldand even all he had added in his 
gamebecause-- wellbecause that seemed so real tooso real 
that it actually might be useful. 
But when he reached No. 7 Philibert Placehe found Loristan and 
Lazarus very much absorbed in work. The door of the back 
sitting-room was locked when he first knocked on itand locked 
again as soon as he had entered. There were many papers on the 
tableand they were evidently studying them. Several of them 
were maps. Some were road mapssome maps of towns and cities
and some of fortifications; but they were all maps of places in 
Samavia. They were usually kept in a strong boxand when they 
were taken out to be studiedthe door was always kept locked. 
Before they had their evening mealthese were all returned to 
the strong boxwhich was pushed into a corner and had newspapers 
piled upon it. 
``When he arrives'' Marco heard Loristan say to Lazarus``we 
can show him clearly what has been planned. He can see for 
himself.'' 
His father spoke scarcely at all during the mealandthough it 
was not the habit of Lazarus to speak at such times unless spoken 
tothis evening it seemed to Marco that he LOOKED more silent 
than he had ever seen him look before. They were plainly both 
thinking anxiously of deeply serious things. The story of the 
stranger who had been to Samavia must not be told yet. But it 
was one which would keep. 
Loristan did not say anything until Lazarus had removed the 
things from the table and made the room as neat as possible. 
While that was being donehe sat with his forehead resting on 
his handas if absorbed in thought. Then he made a gesture to 
Marco. 
``Come hereComrade'' he said. 
Marco went to him. 
``To-night some one may come to talk with me about grave 
things'' he said. ``I think he will comebut I cannot be quite 
sure. It is important that he should know thatwhen he comes
he will find me quite alone. He will come at a late hourand 
Lazarus will open the door quietly that no one may hear. It is 
important that no one should see him. Some one must go and walk 
on the opposite side of the street until he appears. Then the 
one who goes to give warning must cross the pavement before him 
and say in a low voice`The Lamp is lighted!' and at once turn 
quietly away.'' 
What boy's heart would not have leaped with joy at the mystery of 
it! Even a common and dull boy who knew nothing of Samavia would 
have felt jerky. Marco's voice almost shook with the thrill of 
his feeling. 
``How shall I know him?'' he said at once. Without asking at 
allhe knew he was the ``some one'' who was to go. 
``You have seen him before'' Loristan answered. ``He is the man 
who drove in the carriage with the King.'' 
``I shall know him'' said Marco. ``When shall I go?'' 
``Not until it is half-past one o'clock. Go to bed and sleep 
until Lazarus calls you.'' Then he added``Look well at his 
face before you speak. He will probably not be dressed as well 
as he was when you saw him first.'' 
Marco went up-stairs to his room and went to bed as he was told
but it was hard to go to sleep. The rattle and roaring of the 
road did not usually keep him awakebecause he had lived in the 
poorer quarter of too many big capital cities not to be 
accustomed to noise. But to-night it seemed to him thatas he 
lay and looked out at the lamplighthe heard every bus and cab 
which went past. He could not help thinking of the people who 
were in themand on top of themand of the people who were 
hurrying along on the pavement outside the broken iron railings. 
He was wondering what they would think if they knew that things 
connected with the battles they read of in the daily papers were 
going on in one of the shabby houses they scarcely gave a glance 
to as they went by them. It must be something connected with the 
warif a man who was a great diplomat and the companion of kings 
came in secret to talk alone with a patriot who was a Samavian. 
Whatever his father was doing was for the good of Samaviaand 
perhaps the Secret Party knew he was doing it. His heart almost 
beat aloud under his shirt as he lay on the lumpy mattress 
thinking it over. He must indeed look well at the stranger 
before he even moved toward him. He must be sure he was the 
right man. The game he had amused himself with so long--the game 
of trying to remember pictures and people and places clearly and 
in detail--had been a wonderful training. If he could drawhe 
knew he could have made a sketch of the keen-eyedclever
aquiline face with the well-cut and delicately close mouthwhich 
looked as if it had been shut upon secrets always--always. If he 
could drawhe found himself saying again. He COULD drawthough 
perhaps only roughly. He had often amused himself by making 
sketches of things he wanted to ask questions about. He had even 
drawn people's faces in his untrained wayand his father had 
said that he had a crude gift for catching a likeness. Perhaps 
he could make a sketch of this face which would show his father 
that he knew and would recognize it. 
He jumped out of bed and went to a table near the window. There 
was paper and a pencil lying on it. A street lamp exactly 
opposite threw into the room quite light enough for him to see 
by. He half knelt by the table and began to draw. He worked for 
about twenty minutes steadilyand he tore up two or three 
unsatisfactory sketches. The poor drawing would not matter if he 
could catch that subtle look which was not slyness but something 
more dignified and important. It was not difficult to get the 
markedaristocratic outline of the features. A common-looking 
man with less pronounced profile would have been less easy to 
draw in one sense. He gave his mind wholly to the recalling of 
every detail which had photographed itself on his memory through 
its trained habit. Gradually he saw that the likeness was 
becoming clearer. It was not long before it was clear enough to 
be a striking one. Any one who knew the man would recognize it. 
He got updrawing a long and joyful breath. 
He did not put on his shoesbut crossed his room as noiselessly 
as possibleand as noiselessly opened the door. He made no 
ghost of a sound when he went down the stairs. The woman who 
kept the lodging-house had gone to bedand so had the other 
lodgers and the maid of all work. All the lights were out except 
the one he saw a glimmer of under the door of his father's room. 
When he had been a mere babyhe had been taught to make a 
special sign on the door when he wished to speak to Loristan. He 
stood still outside the back sitting-room and made it now. It 
was a low scratching sound--two scratches and a soft tap. 
Lazarus opened the door and looked troubled. 
``It is not yet timesir'' he said very low. 
``I know'' Marco answered. ``But I must show something to my 
father.'' Lazarus let him inand Loristan turned round from his 
writing-table questioningly. 
Marco went forward and laid the sketch down before him. 
``Look at it'' he said. ``I remember him well enough to draw 
that. I thought of it all at once--that I could make a sort of 
picture. Do you think it is like him?'' Loristan examined it 
closely. 
``It is very like him'' he answered. ``You have made me feel 
entirely safe. ThanksComrade. It was a good idea.'' 
There was relief in the grip he gave the boy's handand Marco 
turned away with an exultant feeling. Just as he reached the 
doorLoristan said to him: 
``Make the most of this gift. It is a gift. And it is true your 
mind has had good training. The more you drawthe better. Draw 
everything you can.'' 
Neither the street lampsnor the noisesnor his thoughts kept 
Marco awake when he went back to bed. But before he settled 
himself upon his pillow he gave himself certain orders. He had 
both readand heard Loristan saythat the mind can control the 
body when people once find out that it can do so. He had tried 
experiments himselfand had found out some curious things. One 
was that if he told himself to remember a certain thing at a 
certain timehe usually found that he DID remember it. 
Something in his brain seemed to remind him. He had often tried 
the experiment of telling himself to awaken at a particular hour
and had awakened almost exactly at the moment by the clock. 
``I will sleep until one o'clock'' he said as he shut his eyes. 
``Then I will awaken and feel quite fresh. I shall not be sleepy 
at all.'' 
He slept as soundly as a boy can sleep. And at one o'clock 
exactly he awakenedand found the street lamp still throwing its 
light through the window. He knew it was one o'clockbecause 
there was a cheap little round clock on the tableand he could 
see the time. He was quite fresh and not at all sleepy. His 
experiment had succeeded again. 
He got up and dressed. Then he went down-stairs as noiselessly 
as before. He carried his shoes in his handsas he meant to put 
them on only when he reached the street. He made his sign at his 
father's doorand it was Loristan who opened it. 
``Shall I go now?'' Marco asked. 
``Yes. Walk slowly to the other side of the street. Look in 
every direction. We do not know where he will come from. After 
you have given him the signthen come in and go to bed again.'' 
Marco saluted as a soldier would have done on receiving an order. 
Thenwithout a second's delayhe passed noiselessly out of the 
house. 
Loristan turned back into the room and stood silently in the 
center of it. The long lines of his handsome body looked 
particularly erect and statelyand his eyes were glowing as if 
something deeply moved him. 
``There grows a man for Samavia'' he said to Lazaruswho 
watched him. ``God be thanked!'' 
Lazarus's voice was low and hoarseand he saluted quite 
reverently. 
``Your--sir!'' he said. ``God save the Prince!'' 
``Yes'' Loristan answeredafter a moment's hesitation--``when 
he is found.'' And he went back to his table smiling his 
beautiful smile. 
The wonder of silence in the deserted streets of a great city
after midnight has hushed all the roar and tumult to restis an 
almost unbelievable thing. The stillness in the depths of a 
forest or on a mountain top is not so strange. A few hours ago
the tumult was rushing past; in a few hours moreit will be 
rushing past again. 
But now the street is a naked thing; a distant policeman's tramp 
on the bare pavement has a hollow and almost fearsome sound. It 
seemed especially so to Marco as he crossed the road. Had it 
ever been so empty and deadly silent before? Was it so every 
night? Perhaps it waswhen he was fast asleep on his lumpy 
mattress with the light from a street lamp streaming into the 
room. He listened for the step of the policeman on night-watch
because he did not wish to be seen. There was a jutting wall 
where he could stand in the shadow while the man passed. A 
policeman would stop to look questioningly at a boy who walked up 
and down the pavement at half-past one in the morning. Marco 
could wait until he had gone byand then come out into the light 
and look up and down the road and the cross streets. 
He heard his approaching footsteps in a few minutesand was 
safely in the shadows before he could be seen. When the 
policeman passedhe came out and walked slowly down the road
looking on each sideand now and then looking back. At first no 
one was in sight. Then a late hansom-cab came tinkling along. 
But the people in it were returning from some festivityand were 
laughing and talkingand noticed nothing but their own joking. 
Then there was silence againand for a long timeas it seemed 
to Marcono one was to be seen. It was not really so long as it 
appearedbecause he was anxious. Then a very early 
vegetable-wagon on the way from the country to Covent Garden 
Market came slowly lumbering by with its driver almost asleep on 
his piles of potatoes and cabbages. After it had passedthere 
was stillness and emptiness once moreuntil the policeman showed 
himself again on his beatand Marco slipped into the shadow of 
the wall as he had done before. 
When he came out into the lighthe had begun to hope that the 
time would not seem long to his father. It had not really been 
longhe told himselfit had only seemed so. But his father's 
anxiousness would be greater than his own could be. Loristan 
knew all that depended on the coming of this great man who sat 
side by side with a king in his carriage and talked to him as if 
he knew him well. 
``It might be something which all Samavia is waiting to know-- at 
least all the Secret Party'' Marco thought. ``The Secret Party 
is Samavia''--he started at the sound of footsteps. ``Some one 
is coming!'' he said. ``It is a man.'' 
It was a man who was walking up the road on the same side of the 
pavement as his own. Marco began to walk toward him quietly but 
rather rapidly. He thought it might be best to appear as if he 
were some boy sent on a midnight errand--perhaps to call a 
doctor. Thenif it was a stranger he passedno suspicion would 
be aroused. Was this man as tall as the one who had driven with 
the King? Yeshe was about the same heightbut he was too far 
away to be recognizable otherwise. He drew nearerand Marco 
noticed that he also seemed slightly to hasten his footsteps. 
Marco went on. A little nearerand he would be able to make 
sure. Yesnow he was near enough. Yesthis man was the same 
height and not unlike in figurebut he was much younger. He was 
not the one who had been in the carriage with His Majesty. He 
was not more than thirty years old. He began swinging his cane 
and whistling a music-hall song softly as Marco passed him 
without changing his pace. 
It was after the policeman had walked round his beat and 
disappeared for the third timethat Marco heard footsteps 
echoing at some distance down a cross street. After listening to 
make sure that they were approaching instead of receding in 
another directionhe placed himself at a point where he could 
watch the length of the thoroughfare. Yessome one was coming. 
It was a man's figure again. He was able to place himself rather 
in the shadow so that the person approaching would not see that 
he was being watched. The solitary walker reached a recognizable 
distance in about two minutes' time. He was dressed in an 
ordinary shop-made suit of clothes which was rather shabby and 
quite unnoticeable in its appearance. His common hat was worn so 
that it rather shaded his face. But even before he had crossed 
to Marco's side of the roadthe boy had clearly recognized him. 
It was the man who had driven with the King! 
Chance was with Marco. The man crossed at exactly the place 
which made it easy for the boy to step lightly from behind him
walk a few paces by his sideand then pass directly before him 
across the pavementglancing quietly up into his face as he said 
in a low voice but distinctlythe words ``The Lamp is lighted'' 
and without pausing a second walk on his way down the road. He 
did not slacken his pace or look back until he was some distance 
away. Then he glanced over his shoulderand saw that the figure 
had crossed the street and was inside the railings. It was all 
right. His father would not be disappointed. The great man had 
come. 
He walked for about ten minutesand then went home and to bed. 
But he was obliged to tell himself to go to sleep several times 
before his eyes closed for the rest of the night. 
AN EXCITING GAME 
Loristan referred only once during the next day to what had 
happened. 
``You did your errand well. You were not hurried or nervous'' 
he said. ``The Prince was pleased with your calmness.'' 
No more was said. Marco knew that the quiet mention of the 
stranger's title had been made merely as a designation. If it 
was necessary to mention him again in the futurehe could be 
referred to as ``the Prince.'' In various Continental countries 
there were many princes who were not royal or even serene 
highnesses--who were merely princes as other nobles were dukes or 
barons. Nothing special was revealed when a man was spoken of as 
a prince. But though nothing was said on the subject of the 
incidentit was plain that much work was being done by Loristan 
and Lazarus. The sitting- room door was lockedand the maps and 
documentsusually kept in the iron boxwere being used. 
Marco went to the Tower of London and spent part of the day in 
living again the stories whichcenturies pasthad been inclosed 
within its massive and ancient stone walls. In this wayhe had 
throughout boyhood become intimate with people who to most boys 
seemed only the unreal creatures who professed to be alive in 
school- books of history. He had learned to know them as men and 
women because he had stood in the palaces they had been born in 
and had played in as childrenhad died in at the end. He had 
seen the dungeons they had been imprisoned inthe blocks on 
which they had laid their headsthe battlements on which they 
had fought to defend their fortressed towersthe thrones they 
had sat uponthe crowns they had wornand the jeweled scepters 
they had held. He had stood before their portraits and had gazed 
curiously at their ``Robes of Investiture'' sewn with tens of 
thousands of seed-pearls. To look at a man's face and feel his 
pictured eyes follow you as you move away from himto see the 
strangely splendid garments he once warmed with his living flesh
is to realize that history is not a mere lesson in a school-book
but is a relation of the life stories of men and women who saw 
strange and splendid daysand sometimes suffered strange and 
terrible things. 
There were only a few people who were being led about sightseeing. 
The man in the ancient Beef-eaters' costumewho was 
their guidewas good-naturedand evidently fond of talking. He 
was a big and stout manwith a large face and a smallmerry 
eye. He was rather like pictures of Henry the Eighthhimself
which Marco remembered having seen. He was specially talkative 
when he stood by the tablet that marks the spot where stood the 
block on which Lady Jane Grey had laid her young head. One of 
the sightseers who knew little of English history had asked some 
questions about the reasons for her execution. 
``If her father-in-lawthe Duke of Northumberlandhad left that 
young couple alone--her and her husbandLord Guildford Dudley 
--they'd have kept their heads on. He was bound to make her a 
queenand Mary Tudor was bound to be queen herself. The duke 
wasn't clever enough to manage a conspiracy and work up the 
people. These Samavians we're reading about in the papers would 
have done it better. And they're half-savages.'' 
``They had a big battle outside Melzarr yesterday'' the 
sight-seer standing next to Marco said to the young woman who was 
his companion. ``Thousands of 'em killed. I saw it in big 
letters on the boards as I rode on the top of the bus. They're 
just slaughtering each otherthat's what they're doing.'' 
The talkative Beef-eater heard him. 
``They can't even bury their dead fast enough'' he said. 
``There'll be some sort of plague breaking out and sweeping into 
the countries nearest them. It'll end by spreading all over 
Europe as it did in the Middle Ages. What the civilized 
countries have got to do is to make them choose a decent king and 
begin to behave themselves.'' 
``I'll tell my father that too'' Marco thought. ``It shows that 
everybody is thinking and talking of Samaviaand that even the 
common people know it must have a real king. This must be THE 
TIME!'' And what he meant was that this must be the time for 
which the Secret Party had waited and worked so long--the time 
for the Rising. But his father was out when he went back to 
Philibert Placeand Lazarus looked more silent than ever as he 
stood behind his chair and waited on him through his 
insignificant meal. However plain and scant the food they had to 
eatit was always served with as much care and ceremony as if it 
had been a banquet. 
``A man can eat dry bread and drink cold water as if he were a 
gentleman'' his father had said long ago. ``And it is easy to 
form careless habits. Even if one is hungry enough to feel 
ravenousa man who has been well bred will not allow himself to 
look so. A dog maya man may not. Just as a dog may howl when 
he is angry or in pain and a man may not.'' 
It was only one of the small parts of the training which had 
quietly made the boyeven as a childself-controlled and 
courteoushad taught him ease and grace of boyish carriagethe 
habit of holding his body well and his head erectand had given 
him a certain look of young distinction whichthough it assumed 
nothingset him apart from boys of carelessly awkward bearing. 
``Is there a newspaper here which tells of the battleLazarus?'' 
he askedafter he had left the table. 
``Yessir'' was the answer. ``Your father said that you might 
read it. It is a black tale!'' he addedas he handed him the 
paper. 
It was a black tale. As he readMarco felt as if he could 
scarcely bear it. It was as if Samavia swam in bloodand as if 
the other countries must stand aghast before such furious 
cruelties. 
``Lazarus'' he saidspringing to his feet at lasthis eyes 
burning``something must stop it! There must be something 
strong enough. 
The time has come. The time has come.'' And he walked up and 
down the room because he was too excited to stand still. 
How Lazarus watched him! What a strong and glowing feeling there 
was in his own restrained face! 
``Yessir. Surely the time has come'' he answered. But that 
was all he saidand he turned and went out of the shabby back 
sitting- room at once. It was as if he felt it were wiser to go 
before he lost power over himself and said more. 
Marco made his way to the meeting-place of the Squadto which 
The Rat had in the past given the name of the Barracks. The Rat 
was sitting among his followersand he had been reading the 
morning paper to themthe one which contained the account of the 
battle of Melzarr. The Squad had become the Secret Partyand 
each member of it was thrilled with the spirit of dark plot and 
adventure. They all whispered when they spoke. 
``This is not the Barracks now'' The Rat said. ``It is a 
subterranean cavern. Under the floor of it thousands of swords 
and guns are buriedand it is piled to the roof with them. 
There is only a small place left for us to sit and plot in. We 
crawl in through a holeand the hole is hidden by bushes.'' 
To the rest of the boys this was only an exciting gamebut Marco 
knew that to The Rat it was more. Though The Rat knew none of 
the things he knewhe saw that the whole story seemed to him a 
real 
thing. The struggles of Samaviaas he had heard and read of 
them in the newspapershad taken possession of him. His passion 
for soldiering and warfare and his curiously mature brain had led 
him into following every detail he could lay hold of. He had 
listened to all he had heard with remarkable results. He 
remembered things older people forgot after they had mentioned 
them. He forgot nothing. He had drawn on the flagstones a map 
of Samavia which Marco saw was actually correctand he had made 
a rough sketch of Melzarr and the battle which had had such 
disastrous results. 
``The Maranovitch had possession of Melzarr'' he explained with 
feverish eagerness. ``And the Iarovitch attacked them from 
here'' pointing with his finger. ``That was a mistake. I 
should have attacked them from a place where they would not have 
been expecting it. They expected attack on their fortifications
and they were ready to defend them. I believe the enemy could 
have stolen up in the night and rushed in here'' pointing again. 
Marco thought he was right. The Rat had argued it all outand 
had studied Melzarr as he might have studied a puzzle or an 
arithmetical problem. He was very cleverand as sharp as his 
queer face looked. 
``I believe you would make a good general if you were grown up'' 
said Marco. ``I'd like to show your maps to my father and ask 
him if he doesn't think your stratagem would have been a good 
one.'' 
``Does he know much about Samavia?'' asked The Rat. 
``He has to read the newspapers because he writes things'' Marco 
answered. ``And every one is thinking about the war. No one can 
help it.'' 
The Rat drew a dingyfolded paper out of his pocket and looked 
it over with an air of reflection. 
``I'll make a clean one'' he said. ``I'd like a grown-up man to 
look at it and see if it's all right. My father was more than 
half- drunk when I was drawing thisso I couldn't ask him 
questions. He'll kill himself before long. He had a sort of fit 
last night.'' 
``Tell usRatwot you an' Marco'll 'ave ter do. Let's 'ear wot 
you've made up'' suggested Cad. He drew closerand so did the 
rest of the circlehugging their knees with their arms. 
``This is what we shall have to do'' began The Ratin the 
hollow whisper of a Secret Party. ``THE HOUR HAS COME. To all 
the Secret Ones in Samaviaand to the friends of the Secret 
Party in every countrythe sign must be carried. It must be 
carried by some one who could not be suspected. Who would 
suspect two boys--and one of them a cripple? The best thing of 
all for us is that I am a cripple. Who would suspect a cripple? 
When my father is drunk and beats mehe does it because I won't 
go out and beg in the streets and bring him the money I get. He 
says that people will nearly always give money to a cripple. I 
won't be a beggar for him--the swine-- but I will be one for 
Samavia and the Lost Prince. Marco shall pretend to be my 
brother and take care of me. I say'' speaking to Marco with a 
sudden change of voice``can you sing anything? It doesn't 
matter how you do it.'' 
``YesI can sing'' Marco replied. 
``Then Marco will pretend he is singing to make people give him 
money. I'll get a pair of crutches somewhereand part of the 
time I will go on crutches and part of the time on my platform. 
We'll live like beggars and go wherever we want to. I can whiz 
past a man and give the sign and no one will know. Some times 
Marco can give it when people are dropping money into his cap. 
We can pass from one country to another and rouse everybody who 
is of the Secret Party. We'll work our way into Samaviaand 
we'll be only two boys--and one a cripple--and nobody will think 
we could be doing anything. We'll beg in great cities and on the 
highroad.'' 
``Where'll you get the money to travel?'' said Cad. 
``The Secret Party will give it to usand we sha'n't need much. 
We could beg enoughfor that matter. We'll sleep under the 
starsor under bridgesor archwaysor in dark corners of 
streets. I've done it myself many a time when my father drove me 
out of doors. If it's cold weatherit's bad enough but if it's 
fine weatherit's better than sleeping in the kind of place I'm 
used to. Comrade'' to Marco``are you ready?'' 
He said ``Comrade'' as Loristan didand somehow Marco did not 
resent itbecause he was ready to labor for Samavia. It was 
only a gamebut it made them comrades--and was it really only a 
gameafter all? His excited voice and his strangelined face 
made it singularly unlike one. 
``YesComradeI am ready'' Marco answered him. 
``We shall be in Samavia when the fighting for the Lost Prince 
begins.'' The Rat carried on his story with fire. ``We may see 
a battle. We might do something to help. We might carry 
messages under a rain of bullets--a rain of bullets!'' The 
thought so elated him that he forgot his whisper and his voice 
rang out fiercely. ``Boys have been in battles before. We might 
find the Lost King--nothe Found King--and ask him to let us be 
his servants. He could send us where he couldn't send bigger 
people. I could say to him`Your MajestyI am called ``The 
Rat'' because I can creep through holes and into corners and 
dart about. Order me into any danger and I will obey you. Let 
me die like a soldier if I can't live like one.' '' 
Suddenly he threw his ragged coat sleeve up across his eyes. He 
had wrought himself up tremendously with the picture of the rain 
of bullets. And he felt as if he saw the King who had at last 
been found. The next moment he uncovered his face. 
``That's what we've got to do'' he said. ``Just thatif you 
want to know. And a lot more. There's no end to it!'' 
Marco's thoughts were in a whirl. It ought not to be nothing but 
a game. He grew quite hot all over. If the Secret Party wanted 
to send messengers no one would think of suspectingwho could be 
more harmless-looking than two vagabond boys wandering about 
picking up their living as best they couldnot seeming to belong 
to any one? And one a cripple. It was true--yesit was true
as The Rat saidthat his being a cripple made him look safer 
than any one else. Marco actually put his forehead in his hands 
and pressed his temples. 
``What's the matter?'' exclaimed The Rat. ``What are you 
thinking about?'' 
``I'm thinking what a general you would make. I'm thinking that 
it might all be real--every word of it. It mightn't be a game at 
all'' said Marco. 
``Noit mightn't'' The Rat answered. ``If I knew where the 
Secret Party wasI'd like to go and tell them about it. What's 
that!'' he saidsuddenly turning his head toward the street. 
``What are they calling out?'' 
Some newsboy with a particularly shrill voice was shouting out 
something at the topmost of his lungs. 
Tense and excitedno member of the circle stirred or spoke for a 
few seconds. The Rat listenedMarco listenedthe whole Squad 
listenedpricking up their ears. 
``Startling news from Samavia'' the newsboy was shrilling out. 
``Amazing story! Descendant of the Lost Prince found! 
Descendant of the Lost Prince found!'' 
``Any chap got a penny?'' snapped The Ratbeginning to shuffle 
toward the arched passage. 
``I have!'' answered Marcofollowing him. 
``Come on!'' The Rat yelled. ``Let's go and get a paper!'' And 
he whizzed down the passage with his swiftest rat-like dart
while the Squad followed himshouting and tumbling over each 
other. 
``IT IS NOT A GAME'' 
Loristan walked slowly up and down the back sitting-room and 
listened to Marcowho sat by the small fire and talked. 
``Go on'' he saidwhenever the boy stopped. ``I want to hear 
it all. He's a strange ladand it's a splendid game.'' 
Marco was telling him the story of his second and third visits to 
the inclosure behind the deserted church-yard. He had begun at 
the beginningand his father had listened with a deep interest. 
A year laterMarco recalled this evening as a thrilling memory
and as one which would never pass away from him throughout his 
life. He would always be able to call it all back. The small 
and dingy back roomthe dimness of the one poor gas-burner
which was all they could afford to lightthe iron box pushed 
into the corner with its maps and plans locked safely in itthe 
erect bearing and actual beauty of the tall formwhich the 
shabbiness of worn and mended clothes could not hide or dim. Not 
even rags and tatters could have made Loristan seem insignificant 
or undistinguished. He was always the same. His eyes seemed 
darker and more wonderful than ever in their remote 
thoughtfulness and interest as he spoke. 
``Go on'' he said. ``It is a splendid game. And it is curious. 
He has thought it out well. The lad is a born soldier.'' 
``It is not a game to him'' Marco said. ``And it is not a game 
to me. The Squad is only playingbut with him it's quite 
different. He knows he'll never really get what he wantsbut he 
feels as if this was something near it. He said I might show you 
the map he made. Fatherlook at it.'' 
He gave Loristan the clean copy of The Rat's map of Samavia. The 
city of Melzarr was marked with certain signs. They were to show 
at what points The Rat--if he had been a Samavian general --would 
have attacked the capital. As Marco pointed them outhe 
explained The Rat's reasons for his planning. 
Loristan held the paper for some minutes. He fixed his eyes on 
it curiouslyand his black brows drew themselves together. 
``This is very wonderful!'' he said at last. ``He is quite 
right. They might have got in thereand for the very reasons he 
hit on. 
How did he learn all this?'' 
``He thinks of nothing else now'' answered Marco. ``He has 
always thought of wars and made plans for battles. He's not like 
the rest of the Squad. His father is nearly always drunkbut he 
is very well educatedandwhen he is only half drunkhe likes 
to talk. 
The Rat asks him questions thenand leads him on until he finds 
out a great deal. Then he begs old newspapersand he hides 
himself in corners and listens to what people are saying. He 
says he lies awake at night thinking it outand he thinks about 
it all the day. That was why he got up the Squad.'' 
Loristan had continued examining the paper. 
``Tell him'' he saidwhen he refolded and handed it back
``that I studied his mapand he may be proud of it. You may 
also tell him--'' and he smiled quietly as he spoke--``that in my 
opinion he is right. The Iarovitch would have held Melzarr 
to-day if he had led them.'' 
Marco was full of exultation. 
``I thought you would say he was right. I felt sure you would. 
That is what makes me want to tell you the rest'' he hurried on. 
``If you think he is right about the rest too--'' He stopped 
awkwardly because of a sudden wild thought which rushed upon him. 
``I don't know what you will think'' he stammered. ``Perhaps it 
will seem to you as if the game--as if that part of it 
could--could only be a game.'' 
He was so fervent in spite of his hesitation that Loristan began 
to watch him with sympathetic respectas he always did when the 
boy was trying to express something he was not sure of. One of 
the great bonds between them was that Loristan was always 
interested in his boyish mental processes--in the way in which 
his thoughts led him to any conclusion. 
``Go on'' he said again. ``I am like The Rat and I am like you. 
It has not seemed quite like a game to meso far.'' 
He sat down at the writing-table and Marcoin his eagerness
drew nearer and leaned against itresting on his arms and 
lowering his voicethough it was always their habit to speak at 
such a pitch that no one outside the room they were in could 
distinguish what they said. 
``It is The Rat's plan for giving the signal for a Rising'' he 
said. 
Loristan made a slight movement. 
``Does he think there will be a Rising?'' he asked. 
``He says that must be what the Secret Party has been preparing 
for all these years. And it must come soon. The other nations 
see that the fighting must be put an end to even if they have to 
stop it themselves. And if the real King is found--but when The 
Rat bought the newspaper there was nothing in it about where he 
was. 
It was only a sort of rumor. Nobody seemed to know anything.'' 
He stopped a few secondsbut he did not utter the words which 
were in his mind. He did not say: ``But YOU know.'' 
``And The Rat has a plan for giving the signal?'' Loristan said. 
Marco forgot his first feeling of hesitation. He began to see 
the plan again as he had seen it when The Rat talked. He began 
to speak as The Rat had spokenforgetting that it was a game. 
He made even a clearer picture than The Rat had made of the two 
vagabond boys--one of them a cripple--making their way from one 
place to anotherquite free to carry messages or warnings where 
they chosebecause they were so insignificant and poor-looking 
that no one could think of them as anything but waifs and strays
belonging to nobody and blown about by the wind of poverty and 
chance. He felt as if he wanted to convince his father that the 
plan was a possible one. He did not quite know why he felt so 
anxious to win his approval of the scheme--as if it were real--as 
if it could actually be done. But this feeling was what inspired 
him to enter into new details and suggest possibilities. 
``A boy who was a cripple and one who was only a street singer 
and a sort of beggar could get almost anywhere'' he said. 
``Soldiers would listen to a singer if he sang good songs--and 
they might not be afraid to talk before him. A strolling singer 
and a cripple would perhaps hear a great many things it might be 
useful for the Secret Party to know. They might even hear 
important things. Don't you think so?'' 
Before he had gone far with his storythe faraway look had 
fallen upon Loristan's face--the look Marco had known so well all 
his life. He sat turned a little sidewise from the boyhis 
elbow resting on the table and his forehead on his hand. He 
looked down at the worn carpet at his feetand so he looked as 
he listened to the end. It was as if some new thought were 
slowly growing in his mind as Marco went on talking and enlarging 
on The Rat's plan. He did not even look up or change his 
position as he answered``Yes. I think so.'' 
Butbecause of the deep and growing thought in his faceMarco's 
courage increased. His first fear that this part of the planning 
might seem so bold and reckless that it would only appear to 
belong to a boyish gamegradually faded away for some strange 
reason. His father had said that the first part of The Rat's 
imaginings had not seemed quite like a game to himand now--even 
now--he was not listening as if he were listening to the details 
of mere exaggerated fancies. It was as if the thing he was 
hearing was not wildly impossible. Marco's knowledge of 
Continental countries and of methods of journeying helped him to 
enter into much detail and give realism to his plans. 
``Sometimes we could pretend we knew nothing but English'' he 
said. ``Thenthough The Rat could not understandI could. I 
should always understand in each country. I know the cities and 
the places we should want to go to. I know how boys like us 
liveand so we should not do anything which would make the 
police angry or make people notice us. If any one asked 
questionsI would let them believe that I had met The Rat by 
chanceand we had made up our minds to travel together because 
people gave more money to a boy who sang if he was with a 
cripple. There was a boy who used to play the guitar in the 
streets of Romeand he always had a lame girl with himand 
every one knew it was for that reason. When he playedpeople 
looked at the girl and were sorry for her and gave her soldi. 
You remember.'' 
``YesI remember. And what you say is true'' Loristan 
answered. 
Marco leaned forward across the table so that he came closer to 
him. The tone in which the words were said made his courage leap 
like a flame. To be allowed to go on with this boldness was to 
feel that he was being treated almost as if he were a man. If 
his father had wished to stop himhe could have done it with one 
quiet glancewithout uttering a word. For some wonderful reason 
he did not wish him to cease talking. He was willing to hear 
what he had to say--he was even interested. 
``You are growing older'' he had said the night he had revealed 
the marvelous secret. ``Silence is still the orderbut you are 
man enough to be told more.'' 
Was he man enough to be thought worthy to help Samavia in any 
small way--even with boyish fancies which might contain a germ of 
some thought which older and wiser minds might make useful? Was 
he being listened to because the planmade as part of a game
was not an impossible one--if two boys who could be trusted could 
be found? He caught a deep breath as he went ondrawing still 
nearer and speaking so low that his tone was almost a whisper. 
``If the men of the Secret Party have been working and thinking 
for so many years--they have prepared everything. They know by 
this time exactly what must be done by the messengers who are to 
give the signal. They can tell them where to go and how to know 
the secret friends who must be warned. If the orders could be 
written and given to--to some one who has--who has learned to 
remember things!'' He had begun to breathe so quickly that he 
stopped for a moment. 
Loristan looked up. He looked directly into his eyes. 
``Some one who has been TRAINED to remember things?'' he said. 
``Some one who has been trained'' Marco went oncatching his 
breath again. ``Some one who does not forget--who would never 
forget--never! That oneeven if he were only twelve--even if he 
were only ten--could go and do as he was told.'' Loristan put 
his hand on his shoulder. 
``Comrade'' he said``you are speaking as if you were ready to 
go yourself.'' 
Marco's eyes looked bravely straight into hisbut he said not 
one word. 
``Do you know what it would meanComrade?'' his father went on. 
``You are right. It is not a game. And you are not thinking of 
it as one. But have you thought how it would be if something 
betrayed you--and you were set up against a wall to be SHOT?'' 
Marco stood up quite straight. He tried to believe he felt the 
wall against his back. 
``If I were shotI should be shot for Samavia'' he said. ``And 
for YOUFather.'' 
Even as he was speakingthe front door-bell rang and Lazarus 
evidently opened it. He spoke to some oneand then they heard 
his footsteps approaching the back sitting-room. 
``Open the door'' said Loristanand Marco opened it. 
``There is a boy who is a cripple heresir'' the old soldier 
said. ``He asked to see Master Marco.'' 
``If it is The Rat'' said Loristan``bring him in here. I wish 
to see him.'' 
Marco went down the passage to the front door. The Rat was 
therebut he was not upon his platform. He was leaning upon an 
old pair of crutchesand Marco thought he looked wild and 
strange. He was whiteand somehow the lines of his face seemed 
twisted in a new way. Marco wondered if something had frightened 
himor if he felt ill. 
``Rat'' he began``my father--'' 
``I've come to tell you about MY father'' The Rat broke in 
without waiting to hear the restand his voice was as strange as 
his pale face. ``I don't know why I've comebut I--I just 
wanted to. He's dead!'' 
``Your father?'' Marco stammered. ``He's--'' 
``He's dead'' The Rat answered shakily. ``I told you he'd kill 
himself. He had another fit and he died in it. I knew he would
one of these days. I told him so. He knew he would himself. I 
stayed with him till he was dead--and then I got a bursting 
headache and I felt sick--and I thought about you.'' 
Marco made a jump at him because he saw he was suddenly shaking 
as if he were going to fall. He was just in timeand Lazarus
who had been looking on from the back of the passagecame 
forward. Together they held him up. 
``I'm not going to faint'' he said weakly``but I felt as if I 
was. It was a bad fitand I had to try and hold him. I was all 
by myself. The people in the other attic thought he was only 
drunkand they wouldn't come in. He's lying on the floor there
dead.'' 
``Come and see my father'' Marco said. ``He'll tell us what do 
do. Lazarushelp him.'' 
``I can get on by myself'' said The Rat. ``Do you see my 
crutches? I did something for a pawnbroker last nightand he 
gave them to me for pay.'' 
But though he tried to speak carelesslyhe had plainly been 
horribly shaken and overwrought. His queer face was yellowish 
white stilland he was trembling a little. 
Marco led the way into the back sitting-room. In the midst of 
its shabby gloom and under the dim light Loristan was standing in 
one of his stillattentive attitudes. He was waiting for them. 
``Fatherthis is The Rat'' the boy began. The Rat stopped 
short and rested on his crutchesstaring at the tallreposeful 
figure with widened eyes. 
``Is that your father?'' he said to Marco. And then addedwith 
a jerky half-laugh``He's not much like mineis he?'' 
THE RAT-- AND SAMAVIA 
What The Rat thought when Loristan began to speak to himMarco 
wondered. Suddenly he stood in an unknown worldand it was 
Loristan who made it so because its poverty and shabbiness had no 
power to touch him. He looked at the boy with calm and clear 
eyeshe asked him practical questions gentlyand it was plain 
that he understood many things without asking questions at all. 
Marco thought that perhaps he hadat some timeseen drunken men 
diein his life in strange places. He seemed to know the 
terribleness of the night through which The Rat had passed. He 
made him sit downand he ordered Lazarus to bring him some hot 
coffee and simple food. 
``Haven't had a bite since yesterday'' The Rat saidstill 
staring at him. ``How did you know I hadn't?'' 
``You have not had time'' Loristan answered. 
Afterward he made him lie down on the sofa. 
``Look at my clothes'' said The Rat. 
``Lie down and sleep'' Loristan repliedputting his hand on his 
shoulder and gently forcing him toward the sofa. ``You will 
sleep a long time. You must tell me how to find the place where 
your father diedand I will see that the proper authorities are 
notified.'' 
``What are you doing it for?'' The Rat askedand then he added
``sir.'' 
``Because I am a man and you are a boy. And this is a terrible 
thing'' Loristan answered him. 
He went away without saying moreand The Rat lay on the sofa 
staring at the wall and thinking about it until he fell asleep. 
Butbefore this happenedMarco had quietly left him alone. So
as Loristan had told him he wouldhe slept deeply and long; in 
facthe slept through all the night. 
When he awakened it was morningand Lazarus was standing by the 
side of the sofa looking down at him. 
``You will want to make yourself clean'' he said. ``It must be 
done.'' 
``Clean!'' said The Ratwith his squeaky laugh. ``I couldn't 
keep clean when I had a room to live inand now where am I to 
wash myself?'' He sat up and looked about him. 
``Give me my crutches'' he said. ``I've got to go. They've let 
me sleep here all night. They didn't turn me into the street. I 
don't know why they didn't. Marco's father--he's the right sort. 
He looks like a swell.'' 
``The Master'' said Lazaruswith a rigid manner``the Master 
is a great gentleman. He would turn no tired creature into the 
street. He and his son are poorbut they are of those who give. 
He desires to see and talk to you again. You are to have bread 
and coffee with him and the young Master. But it is I who tell 
you that you cannot sit at table with them until you are clean. 
Come with me'' and he handed him his crutches. His manner was 
authoritativebut it was the manner of a soldier; his somewhat 
stiff and erect movements were those of a soldieralsoand The 
Rat liked them because they made him feel as if he were in 
barracks. He did not know what was going to happenbut he got 
up and followed him on his crutches. 
Lazarus took him to a closet under the stairs where a battered 
tin bath was already full of hot waterwhich the old soldier 
himself had brought in pails. There were soap and coarseclean 
towels on a wooden chairand also there was a much worn but 
cleanly suit of clothes. 
``Put these on when you have bathed'' Lazarus orderedpointing 
to them. ``They belong to the young Master and will be large for 
youbut they will be better than your own.'' And then he went 
out of the closet and shut the door. 
It was a new experience for The Rat. So long as he remembered
he had washed his face and hands--when he had washed them at 
all--at an iron tap set in the wall of a back street or court in 
some slum. His father and himself had long ago sunk into the 
world where to wash one's self is not a part of every-day life. 
They had lived amid dirt and foulnessand when his father had 
been in a maudlin statehe had sometimes cried and talked of the 
long-past days when he had shaved every morning and put on a 
clean shirt. 
To stand even in the most battered of tin baths full of clean hot 
water and to splash and scrub with a big piece of flannel and 
plenty of soap was a marvelous thing. The Rat's tired body 
responded to the novelty with a curious feeling of freshness and 
comfort. 
``I dare say swells do this every day'' he muttered. ``I'd do 
it myself if I was a swell. Soldiers have to keep themselves so 
clean they shine.'' 
Whenafter making the most of his soap and waterhe came out of 
the closet under the stairshe was as fresh as Marco himself; 
andthough his clothes had been built for a more stalwart body
his recognition of their cleanliness filled him with pleasure. 
He wondered if by any effort he could keep himself clean when he 
went out into the world again and had to sleep in any hole the 
police did not order him out of. 
He wanted to see Marco againbut he wanted more to see the tall 
man with the soft dark eyes and that queer look of being a swell 
in spite of his shabby clothes and the dingy place he lived in. 
There was something about him which made you keep on looking at 
himand wanting to know what he was thinking ofand why you 
felt as if you'd take orders from him as you'd take orders from 
your generalif you were a soldier. He lookedsomehowlike a 
soldierbut as if he were something more--as if people had taken 
orders from him all his lifeand always would take orders from 
him. And yet he had that quiet voice and those fineeasy 
movementsand he was not a soldier at allbut only a poor man 
who wrote things for papers which did not pay him well enough to 
give him and his son a comfortable living. Through all the time 
of his seclusion with the battered bath and the soap and water
The Rat thought of himand longed to have another look at him 
and hear him speak again. He did not see any reason why he 
should have let him sleep on his sofa or why he should give him a 
breakfast before he turned him out to face the world. It was 
first-rate of him to do it. The Rat felt that when he was turned 
outafter he had had the coffeehe should want to hang about 
the neighborhood just on the chance of seeing him pass by 
sometimes. He did not know what he was going to do. The parish 
officials would by this time have taken his dead fatherand he 
would not see him again. He did not want to see him again. He 
had never seemed like a father. They had never cared anything 
for each other. He had only been a wretched outcast whose best 
hours had been when he had drunk too much to be violent and 
brutal. PerhapsThe Rat thoughthe would be driven to going 
about on his platform on the pavements and beggingas his father 
had tried to force him to do. Could he sell newspapers? What 
could a crippled lad do unless he begged or sold papers? 
Lazarus was waiting for him in the passage. The Rat held back a 
little. 
``Perhaps they'd rather not eat their breakfast with me'' he 
hesitated. ``I'm not--I'm not the kind they are. I could 
swallow the coffee out here and carry the bread away with me. 
And you could thank him for me. I'd want him to know I thanked 
him.'' 
Lazarus also had a steady eye. The Rat realized that he was 
looking him over as if he were summing him up. 
``You may not be the kind they arebut you may be of a kind the 
Master sees good in. If he did not see somethinghe would not 
ask you to sit at his table. You are to come with me.'' 
The Squad had seen good in The Ratbut no one else had. 
Policemen had moved him on whenever they set eyes on himthe 
wretched women of the slums had regarded him as they regarded his 
dartingthieving namesake; loafing or busy men had seen in him a 
young nuisance to be kicked or pushed out of the way. The Squad 
had not called ``good'' what they saw in him. They would have 
yelled with laughter if they had heard any one else call it so. 
``Goodness'' was not considered an attraction in their world. 
The Rat grinned a little and wondered what was meantas he 
followed Lazarus into the back sitting-room. 
It was as dingy and gloomy as it had looked the night beforebut 
by the daylight The Rat saw how rigidly neat it washow well 
swept and free from any speck of dusthow the poor windows had 
been cleaned and polishedand how everything was set in order. 
The coarse linen cloth on the table was fresh and spotlessso 
was the cheap crockerythe spoons shone with brightness. 
Loristan was standing on the hearth and Marco was near him. They 
were waiting for their vagabond guest as if he had been a 
gentleman. 
The Rat hesitated and shuffled at the door for a momentand then 
it suddenly occurred to him to stand as straight as he could and 
salute. When he found himself in the presence of Loristanhe 
felt as if he ought to do somethingbut he did not know what. 
Loristan's recognition of his gesture and his expression as he 
moved forward lifted from The Rat's shoulders a load which he 
himself had not known lay there. Somehow he felt as if something 
new had happened to himas if he were not mere ``vermin'' after 
allas if he need not be on the defensive--even as if he need 
not feel so much in the darkand like a thing there was no place 
in the world for. The mere straight and far-seeing look of this 
man's eyes seemed to make a place somewhere for what he looked 
at. And yet what he said was quite simple. 
``This is well'' he said. ``You have rested. We will have some 
foodand then we will talk together.'' He made a slight gesture 
in the direction of the chair at the right hand of his own place. 
The Rat hesitated again. What a swell he was! With that wave of 
the hand he made you feel as if you were a fellow like himself
and he was doing you some honor. 
``I'm not--'' The Rat broke off and jerked his head toward 
Marco. ``He knows--'' he ended``I've never sat at a table like 
this before.'' 
``There is not much on it.'' Loristan made the slight gesture 
toward the right-hand seat again and smiled. ``Let us sit 
down.'' 
The Rat obeyed him and the meal began. There were only bread and 
coffee and a little butter before them. But Lazarus presented 
the cups and plates on a small japanned tray as if it were a 
golden salver. When he was not servinghe stood upright behind 
his master's chairas though he wore royal livery of scarlet and 
gold. To the boy who had gnawed a bone or munched a crust 
wheresoever he found themand with no thought but of the 
appeasing of his own wolfish hungerto watch the two with whom 
he sat eat their simple food was a new thing. He knew nothing of 
the every-day decencies of civilized people. The Rat liked to 
look at themand he found himself trying to hold his cup as 
Loristan didand to sit and move as Marco was sitting and 
moving--taking his bread or butterwhen it was held at his side 
by Lazarusas if it were a simple thing to be waited upon. 
Marco had had things handed to him all his lifeand it did not 
make him feel awkward. The Rat knew that his own father had once 
lived like this. He himself would have been at ease if chance 
had treated him fairly. It made him scowl to think of it. But 
in a few minutes Loristan began to talk about the copy of the map 
of Samavia. Then The Rat forgot everything else and was ill at 
ease no more. He did not know that Loristan was leading him on 
to explain his theories about the country and the people and the 
war. He found himself telling all that he had reador 
overheardor THOUGHT as he lay awake in his garret. He had 
thought out a great many things in a way not at all like a boy's. 
His strangely concentrated and over-mature mind had been full of 
military schemes which Loristan listened to with curiosity and 
also with amazement. He had become extraordinarily clever in one 
direction because he had fixed all his mental powers on one 
thing. It seemed scarcely natural that an untaught vagabond lad 
should know so much and reason so clearly. It was at least 
extraordinarily interesting. There had been no skirmishno 
attackno battle which he had not led and fought in his own 
imaginationand he had made scores of rough queer plans of all 
that had been or should have been done. Lazarus listened as 
attentively as his masterand once Marco saw him exchange a 
startledrapid glance with Loristan. It was at a moment when 
The Rat was sketching with his finger on the cloth an attack 
which OUGHT to have been made but was not. And Marco knew at 
once that the quickly exchanged look meant ``He is right! If it 
had been donethere would have been victory instead of 
disaster!'' 
It was a wonderful mealthough it was only of bread and coffee. 
The Rat knew he should never be able to forget it. 
AfterwardLoristan told him of what he had done the night 
before. He had seen the parish authorities and all had been done 
which a city government provides in the case of a pauper's death. 
His father would be buried in the usual manner. ``We will follow 
him'' Loristan said in the end. ``You and I and Marco and 
Lazarus.'' 
The Rat's mouth fell open. 
``You--and Marco--and Lazarus!'' he exclaimedstaring. ``And 
me! Why should any of us go? I don't want to. He wouldn't have 
followed me if I'd been the one.'' 
Loristan remained silent for a few moments. 
``When a life has counted for nothingthe end of it is a lonely 
thing'' he said at last. ``If it has forgotten all respect for 
itselfpity is all that one has left to give. One would like to 
give SOMETHING to anything so lonely.'' He said the last brief 
sentence after a pause. 
``Let us go'' Marco said suddenly; and he caught The Rat's hand. 
The Rat's own movement was sudden. He slipped from his crutches 
to a chairand sat and gazed at the worn carpet as if he were 
not looking at it at allbut at something a long way off. After 
a while he looked up at Loristan. 
``Do you know what I thought ofall at once?'' he said in a 
shaky voice. ``I thought of that `Lost Prince' one. He only 
lived once. Perhaps he didn't live a long time. Nobody knows. 
But it's five hundred years agoandjust because he was the 
kind he wasevery one that remembers him thinks of something 
fine. It's queerbut it does you good just to hear his name. 
And if he has been training kings for Samavia all these 
centuries--they may have been poor and nobody may have known 
about thembut they've been KINGS. That's what HE did--just by 
being alive a few years. When I think of him and then think 
of--the other--there's such an awful difference that --yes--I'm 
sorry. For the first time. I'm his son and I can't care about 
him; but he's too lonely--I want to go.'' 
So it was that when the forlorn derelict was carried to the 
graveyard where nameless burdens on the city were given to the 
eartha curious funeral procession followed him. There were two 
tall and soldierly looking men and two boysone of whom walked 
on crutchesand behind them were ten other boys who walked two 
by two. These ten were a queerragged lot; but they had 
respectfully sober facesheld their heads and their shoulders 
welland walked with a remarkably regular marching step. 
It was the Squad; but they had left their ``rifles'' at home. 
``COME WITH ME'' 
When they came back from the graveyardThe Rat was silent all 
the way. He was thinking of what had happened and of what lay 
before him. He wasin factthinking chiefly that nothing lay 
before him--nothing. The certainty of that gave his sharplined 
face new lines and sharpness which made it look pinched and hard. 
He had nothing before but a corner in a bare garret in which he 
could find little more than a leaking roof over his head--when he 
was not turned out into the street. Butif policemen asked him 
where he livedhe could say he lived in Bone Court with his 
father. Now he couldn't say it. 
He got along very well on his crutchesbut he was rather tired 
when they reached the turn in the street which led in the 
direction of his old haunts. At any ratethey were haunts he 
knewand he belonged to them more than he belonged elsewhere. 
The Squad stopped at this particular corner because it led to 
such homes as they possessed. They stopped in a body and looked 
at The Ratand The Rat stopped also. He swung himself to 
Loristan's sidetouching his hand to his forehead. 
``Thank yousir'' he said. ``Line and saluteyou chaps!'' And 
the Squad stood in line and raised their hands also. ``Thank 
yousir. Thank youMarco. Good-by.'' 
``Where are you going?'' Loristan asked. 
``I don't know yet'' The Rat answeredbiting his lips. 
He and Loristan looked at each other a few moments in silence. 
Both of them were thinking very hard. In The Rat's eyes there 
was a kind of desperate adoration. He did not know what he 
should do when this man turned and walked away from him. It 
would be as if the sun itself had dropped out of the heavens--and 
The Rat had not thought of what the sun meant before. 
But Loristan did not turn and walk away. He looked deep into the 
lad's eyes as if he were searching to find some certainty. Then 
he said in a low voice``You know how poor I am.'' 
``I--I don't care!'' said The Rat. ``You--you're like a king to 
me. I'd stand up and be shot to bits if you told me to do it.'' 
``I am so poor that I am not sure I can give you enough dry bread 
to eat--always. Marco and Lazarus and I are often hungry. 
Sometimes you might have nothing to sleep on but the floor. But 
I can find a PLACE for you if I take you with me'' said 
Loristan. ``Do you know what I mean by a PLACE?'' 
``YesI do'' answered The Rat. ``It's what I've never had 
before --sir.'' 
What he knew was that it meant some bit of spaceout of all the 
worldwhere he would have a sort of right to standhowsoever 
poor and bare it might be. 
``I'm not used to beds or to food enough'' he said. But he did 
not dare to insist too much on that ``place.'' It seemed too 
great a thing to be true. 
Loristan took his arm. 
``Come with me'' he said. ``We won't part. I believe you are 
to be trusted.'' 
The Rat turned quite white in a sort of anguish of joy. He had 
never cared for any one in his life. He had been a sort of young 
Cainhis hand against every man and every man's hand against 
him. And during the last twelve hours he had plunged into a 
tumultuous ocean of boyish hero-worship. This man seemed like a 
sort of god to him. What he had said and done the day beforein 
what had been really The Rat's hours of extremityafter that 
appalling night--the way he had looked into his face and 
understood it allthe talk at the table when he had listened to 
him seriouslycomprehending and actually respecting his plans 
and rough maps; his silent companionship as they followed the 
pauper hearse together--these things were enough to make the lad 
longingly ready to be any sort of servant or slave to him if he 
might see and be spoken to by him even once or twice a day. 
The Squad wore a look of dismay for a momentand Loristan saw 
it. 
``I am going to take your captain with me'' he said. ``But he 
will come back to Barracks. So will Marco.'' 
``Will yer go on with the game?'' asked Cadas eager spokesman. 
``We want to go on being the `Secret Party.' '' 
``YesI'll go on'' The Rat answered. ``I won't give it up. 
There's a lot in the papers to-day.'' 
So they were pacified and went on their wayand Loristan and 
Lazarus and Marco and The Rat went on theirs also. 
``Queer thing is'' The Rat thought as they walked together
``I'm a bit afraid to speak to him unless he speaks to me first. 
Never felt that way before with any one.'' 
He had jeered at policemen and had impudently chaffed ``swells'' 
but he felt a sort of secret awe of this manand actually liked 
the feeling. 
``It's as if I was a private and he was commander-in-chief'' he 
thought. ``That's it.'' 
Loristan talked to him as they went. He was simple enough in 
his statements of the situation. There was an old sofa in 
Marco's bedroom. It was narrow and hardas Marco's bed itself 
wasbut The Rat could sleep upon it. They would share what food 
they had. There were newspapers and magazines to be read. There 
were papers and pencils to draw new maps and plans of battles. 
There was even an old map of Samavia of Marco's which the two 
boys could study together as an aid to their game. The Rat's 
eyes began to have points of fire in them. 
``If I could see the papers every morningI could fight the 
battles on paper by night'' he saidquite panting at the 
incredible vision of splendor. Were all the kingdoms of the 
earth going to be given to him? Was he going to sleep without a 
drunken father near him? 
Was he going to have a chance to wash himself and to sit at a 
table and hear people say ``Thank you'' and ``I beg pardon'' as 
if they were using the most ordinary fashion of speech? His own 
fatherbefore he had sunk into the depthshad lived and spoken 
in this way. 
``When I have timewe will see who can draw up the best plans'' 
Loristan said. 
``Do you mean that you'll look at mine then--when you have 
time?'' asked The Rathesitatingly. ``I wasn't expecting 
that.'' 
``Yes'' answered Loristan``I'll look at themand we'll talk 
them over.'' 
As they went onhe told him that he and Marco could do many 
things together. They could go to museums and galleriesand 
Marco could show him what he himself was familiar with. 
``My father said you wouldn't let him come back to Barracks when 
you found out about it'' The Rat saidhesitating again and 
growing hot because he remembered so many ugly past days. 
``But--but I swear I won't do him any harmsir. I won't!'' 
``When I said I believed you could be trustedI meant several 
things'' Loristan answered him. ``That was one of them. You're 
a new recruit. You and Marco are both under a commanding 
officer.'' He said the words because he knew they would elate 
him and stir his blood. 
``ONLY TWO BOYS'' 
The words did elate himand his blood was stirred by them every 
time they returned to his mind. He remembered them through the 
days and nights that followed. He sometimesindeedawakened 
from his deep sleep on the hard and narrow sofa in Marco's room
and found that he was saying them half aloud to himself. The 
hardness of the sofa did not prevent his resting as he had never 
rested before in his life. By contrast with the past he had 
knownthis poor existence was comfort which verged on luxury. 
He got into the battered tin bath every morninghe sat at the 
clean tableand could look at Loristan and speak to him and hear 
his voice. His chief trouble was that he could hardly keep his 
eyes off himand he was a little afraid he might be annoyed. 
But he could not bear to lose a look or a movement. 
At the end of the second dayhe found his wayat some trouble
to Lazarus's small back room at the top of the house. 
``Will you let me come in and talk a bit?'' he said. 
When he went inhe was obliged to sit on the top of Lazarus's 
wooden box because there was nothing else for him. 
``I want to ask you'' he plunged into his talk at once``do you 
think he minds me looking at him so much? I can't help it--but 
if he hates it--well--I'll try and keep my eyes on the table.'' 
``The Master is used to being looked at'' Lazarus made answer. 
``But it would be well to ask himself. He likes open speech.'' 
``I want to find out everything he likes and everything he 
doesn't like'' The Rat said. ``I want--isn't there 
anything--anything you'd let me do for him? It wouldn't matter 
what it was. And he needn't know you are not doing it. I know 
you wouldn't be willing to give up anything particular. But you 
wait on him night and day. Couldn't you give up something to 
me?'' 
Lazarus pierced him with keen eyes. He did not answer for 
several seconds. 
``Now and then'' he said gruffly at last``I'll let you brush 
his boots. But not every day--perhaps once a week.'' 
``When will you let me have my first turn?'' The Rat asked. 
Lazarus reflected. His shaggy eyebrows drew themselves down over 
his eyes as if this were a question of state. 
``Next Saturday'' he conceded. ``Not before. I'll tell him 
when you brush them.'' 
``You needn't'' said The Rat. ``It's not that I want him to 
know. I want to know myself that I'm doing something for him. 
I'll find out things that I can do without interfering with you. 
I'll think them out.'' 
``Anything any one else did for him would be interfering with 
me'' said Lazarus. 
It was The Rat's turn to reflect nowand his face twisted itself 
into new lines and wrinkles. 
``I'll tell you before I do anything'' he saidafter he had 
thought it over. ``You served him first.'' 
``I have served him ever since he was born'' said Lazarus. 
``He's--he's yours'' said The Ratstill thinking deeply. 
``I am his'' was Lazarus's stern answer. ``I am his--and the 
young Master's.'' 
``That's it'' The Rat said. Then a squeak of a half-laugh broke 
from him. ``I've never been anybody's'' he added. 
His sharp eyes caught a passing look on Lazarus's face. Such a 
queerdisturbedsudden look. Could he be rather sorry for him? 
Perhaps the look meant something like that. 
``If you stay near him long enough--and it needn't be long--you 
will be his too. Everybody is.'' 
The Rat sat up as straight as he could. ``When it comes to 
that'' he blurted out``I'm his nowin my way. I was his two 
minutes after he looked at me with his queerhandsome eyes. 
They're queer because they get youand you want to follow him. 
I'm going to follow.'' 
That night Lazarus recounted to his master the story of the 
scene. He simply repeated word for word what had been saidand 
Loristan listened gravely. 
``We have not had time to learn much of him yet'' he commented. 
``But that is a faithful soulI think.'' 
A few days laterMarco missed The Rat soon after their breakfast 
hour. He had gone out without saying anything to the household. 
He did not return for several hoursand when he came back he 
looked tired. In the afternoon he fell asleep on his sofa in 
Marco's room and slept heavily. No one asked him any questions 
as he volunteered no explanation. The next day he went out again 
in the same mysterious mannerand the next and the next. For an 
entire week he went out and returned with the tired look; but he 
did not explain until one morningas he lay on his sofa before 
getting uphe said to Marco: 
``I'm practicing walking with my crutches. I don't want to go 
about like a rat any more. I mean to be as near like other 
people as I can. I walk farther every morning. I began with two 
miles. If I practice every daymy crutches will be like legs.'' 
``Shall I walk with you?'' asked Marco. 
``Wouldn't you mind walking with a cripple?'' 
``Don't call yourself that'' said Marco. ``We can talk 
togetherand try to remember everything we see as we go along.'' 
``I want to learn to remember things. I'd like to train myself 
in that way too'' The Rat answered. ``I'd give anything to know 
some of the things your father taught you. I've got a good 
memory. I remember a lot of things I don't want to remember. 
Will you go this morning?'' 
That morning they wentand Loristan was told the reason for 
their walk. But though he knew one reasonhe did not know all 
about it. When The Rat was allowed his ``turn'' of the 
boot-brushinghe told more to Lazarus. 
``What I want to do'' he said``is not only walk as fast as 
other people dobut faster. Acrobats train themselves to do 
anything. It's training that does it. There might come a time 
when he might need some one to go on an errand quicklyand I'm 
going to be ready. I'm going to train myself until he needn't 
think of me as if I were only a cripple who can't do things and 
has to be taken care of. I want him to know that I'm really as 
strong as Marcoand where Marco can go I can go.'' 
``He'' was what he always saidand Lazarus always understood 
without explanation. 
`` `The Master' is your name for him'' he had explained at the 
beginning. ``And I can't call him just `Mister' Loristan. It 
sounds like cheek. If he was called `General' or `Colonel' I 
could stand it--though it wouldn't be quite right. Some day I 
shall find a name. When I speak to himI say `Sir.' '' 
The walks were taken every dayand each day were longer. Marco 
found himself silently watching The Rat with amazement at his 
determination and endurance. He knew that he must not speak of 
what he could not fail to see as they walked. He must not tell 
him that he looked tired and pale and sometimes desperately 
fatigued. He had inherited from his father the tact which sees 
what people do not wish to be reminded of. He knew that for some 
reason of his own The Rat had determined to do this thing at any 
cost to himself. Sometimes his face grew white and worn and he 
breathed hardbut he never rested more than a few minutesand 
never turned back or shortened a walk they had planned. 
``Tell me something about Samaviasomething to remember'' he 
would saywhen he looked his worst. ``When I begin to try to 
rememberI forget--other things.'' 
Soas they went on their waythey talkedand The Rat committed 
things to memory. He was quick at itand grew quicker every 
day. They invented a game of remembering faces they passed. 
Both would learn them by heartand on their return home Marco 
would draw them. They went to the museums and galleries and 
learned things theremaking from memory lists and descriptions 
which at night they showed to Loristanwhen he was not too busy 
to talk to them. 
As the days passedMarco saw that The Rat was gaining strength. 
This exhilarated him greatly. They often went to Hampstead Heath 
and walked in the wind and sun. There The Rat would go through 
curious exercises which he believed would develop his muscles. 
He began to look less tired during and after his journey. There 
were even fewer wrinkles on his faceand his sharp eyes looked 
less fierce. The talks between the two boys were long and 
curious. Marco soon realized that The Rat wanted to 
learn--learn--learn. 
``Your father can talk to you almost as if you were twenty years 
old'' he said once. ``He knows you can understand what he's 
saying. If he were to talk to mehe'd always have to remember 
that I was only a rat that had lived in gutters and seen nothing 
else.'' 
They were talking in their roomas they nearly always did after 
they went to bed and the street lamp shone in and lighted their 
bare little room. They often sat up clasping their kneesMarco 
on his poor bedThe Rat on his hard sofabut neither of them 
conscious either of the poorness or hardnessbecause to each one 
the long unknown sense of companionship was such a satisfying 
thing. Neither of them had ever talked intimately to another 
boyand now they were together day and night. They revealed 
their thoughts to each other; they told each other things it had 
never before occurred to either to think of telling any one. In 
factthey found out about themselvesas they talkedthings 
they had not quite known before. Marco had gradually discovered 
that the admiration The Rat had for his father was an impassioned 
and curious feeling which possessed him entirely. It seemed to 
Marco that it was beginning to be like a sort of religion. He 
evidently thought of him every moment. So when he spoke of 
Loristan's knowing him to be only a rat of the gutterMarco felt 
he himself was fortunate in remembering something he could say. 
``My father said yesterday that you had a big brain and a strong 
will'' he answered from his bed. ``He said that you had a 
wonderful memory which only needed exercising. He said it after 
he looked over the list you made of the things you had seen in 
the Tower.'' 
The Rat shuffled on his sofa and clasped his knees tighter. 
``Did he? Did he?'' he said. 
He rested his chin upon his knees for a few minutes and stared 
straight before him. Then he turned to the bed. 
``Marco'' he saidin a rather hoarse voicea queer voice; 
``are you jealous?'' 
``Jealous'' said Marco; ``why?'' 
``I meanhave you ever been jealous? Do you know what it is 
like?'' 
``I don't think I do'' answered Marcostaring a little. 
``Are you ever jealous of Lazarus because he's always with your 
father--because he's with him oftener than you are--and knows 
about his work--and can do things for him you can't? I meanare 
you jealous of--your father?'' 
Marco loosed his arms from his knees and lay down flat on his 
pillow. 
``NoI'm not. The more people love and serve himthe better'' 
he said. ``The only thing I care for is--is him. I just care 
for HIM. Lazarus does too. Don't you?'' 
The Rat was greatly excited internally. He had been thinking of 
this thing a great deal. The thought had sometimes terrified 
him. He might as well have it out now if he could. If he could 
get at the trutheverything would be easier. But would Marco 
really tell him? 
``Don't you mind?'' he saidstill hoarse and eager--``don't you 
mind how much I care for him? Could it ever make you feel 
savage? Could it ever set you thinking I was nothing but--what I 
am--and that it was cheek of me to push myself in and fasten on 
to a gentleman who only took me up for charity? Here's the 
living truth'' he ended in an outburst; ``if I were you and you 
were methat's what I should be thinking. I know it is. I 
couldn't help it. I should see every low thing there was in you
in your manners and your voice and your looks. I should see 
nothing but the contrast between you and me and between you and 
him. I should be so jealous that I should just rage. I should 
HATE you--and I should DESPISE you!'' 
He had wrought himself up to such a passion of feeling that he 
set Marco thinking that what he was hearing meant strange and 
strong emotions such as he himself had never experienced. The 
Rat had been thinking over all this in secret for some timeit 
was evident. Marco lay still a few minutes and thought it over. 
Then he found something to sayjust as he had found something 
before. 
``You mightif you were with other people who thought in the 
same way'' he said``and if you hadn't found out that it is 
such a mistake to think in that waythat it's even stupid. But
you seeif you were Iyou would have lived with my fatherand 
he'd have told you what he knows--what he's been finding out all 
his life.'' 
``What's he found out?'' 
``Oh!'' Marco answeredquite casually``just that you can't set 
savage thoughts loose in the worldany more than you can let 
loose savage beasts with hydrophobia. They spread a sort of 
rabiesand they always tear and worry you first of all.'' 
``What do you mean?'' The Rat gasped out. 
``It's like this'' said Marcolying flat and cool on his hard 
pillow and looking at the reflection of the street lamp on the 
ceiling. ``That day I turned into your Barrackswithout knowing 
that you'd think I was spyingit made you feel savageand you 
threw the stone at me. If it had made me feel savage and I'd 
rushed in and foughtwhat would have happened to all of us?'' 
The Rat's spirit of generalship gave the answer. 
``I should have called on the Squad to charge with fixed 
bayonets. They'd have half killed you. You're a strong chap
and you'd have hurt a lot of them.'' 
A note of terror broke into his voice. ``What a fool I should 
have been!'' he cried out. ``I should never have come here! I 
should never have known HIM!'' Even by the light of the street 
lamp Marco could see him begin to look almost ghastly. 
``The Squad could easily have half killed me'' Marco added. 
``They could have quite killed meif they had wanted to do it. 
And who would have got any good out of it? It would only have 
been a street- lads' row--with the police and prison at the end 
of it.'' 
``But because you'd lived with him'' The Rat pondered``you 
walked in as if you didn't mindand just asked why we did it
and looked like a stronger chap than any of us--and 
different--different. I wondered what was the matter with you
you were so cool and steady. I know now. It was because you 
were like him. He'd taught you. He's like a wizard.'' 
``He knows things that wizards think they knowbut he knows them 
better'' Marco said. ``He says they're not queer and unnatural. 
They're just simple laws of nature. You have to be either on one 
side or the otherlike an army. You choose your side. You 
either build up or tear down. You either keep in the light where 
you can seeor you stand in the dark and fight everything that 
comes near youbecause you can't see and you think it's an 
enemy. Noyou wouldn't have been jealous if you'd been I and 
I'd been you.'' 
``And you're NOT?'' The Rat's sharp voice was almost hollow. 
``You'll swear you're not?'' 
``I'm not'' said Marco. 
The Rat's excitement even increased a shade as he poured forth 
his confession. 
``I was afraid'' he said. ``I've been afraid every day since I 
came here. I'll tell you straight out. It seemed just natural 
that you and Lazarus wouldn't stand mejust as I wouldn't have 
stood you. It seemed just natural that you'd work together to 
throw me out. I knew how I should have worked myself. Marco--I 
said I'd tell you straight out--I'm jealous of you. I'm jealous 
of Lazarus. It makes me wild when I see you both knowing all 
about himand fit and ready to do anything he wants done. I'm 
not ready and I'm not fit.'' 
``You'd do anything he wanted donewhether you were fit and 
ready or not'' said Marco. ``He knows that.'' 
``Does he? Do you think he does?'' cried The Rat. ``I wish he'd 
try me. I wish he would.'' 
Marco turned over on his bed and rose up on his elbow so that he 
faced The Rat on his sofa. 
``Let us WAIT'' he said in a whisper. ``Let us WAIT.'' 
There was a pauseand then The Rat whispered also. 
``For what?'' 
``For him to find out that we're fit to be tried. Don't you see 
what fools we should be if we spent our time in being jealous
either of us. We're only two boys. Suppose he saw we were only 
two silly fools. When you are jealous of me or of Lazarusjust 
go and sit down in a still place and think of HIM. Don't think 
about yourself or about us. He's so quiet that to think about 
him makes you quiet yourself. When things go wrong or when I'm 
lonelyhe's taught me to sit down and make myself think of 
things I like--picturesbooksmonumentssplendid places. It 
pushes the other things out and sets your mind going properly. 
He doesn't know I nearly always think of him. He's the best 
thought himself. You try it. You're not really jealous. You 
only THINK you are. You'll find that out if you always stop 
yourself in time. Any one can be such a fool if he lets himself. 
And he can always stop it if he makes up his mind. I'm not 
jealous. You must let that thought alone. You're not jealous 
yourself. Kick that thought into the street.'' 
The Rat caught his breath and threw his arms up over his eyes. 
``OhLord! OhLord!'' he said; ``if I'd lived near him always 
as you have. If I just had.'' 
``We're both living near him now'' said Marco. ``And here's 
something to think of'' leaning more forward on his elbow. 
``The kings who were being made ready for Samavia have waited all 
these years; WE can make ourselves ready and wait so thatif 
just two boys are wanted to do something--just two boys--we can 
step out of the ranks when the call comes and say `Here!' Now 
let's lie down and think of it until we go to sleep.''
XIII 
LORISTAN ATTENDS A DRILL OF THE SQUADAND MARCO MEETS A SAMAVIAN 
The Squad was not forgotten. It found that Loristan himself 
would have regarded neglect as a breach of military duty. 
``You must remember your men'' he saidtwo or three days after 
The Rat became a member of his household. ``You must keep up 
their drill. Marco tells me it was very smart. Don't let them 
get slack.'' 
``His men!'' The Rat felt what he could not have put into words. 
He knew he had workedand that the Squad had workedin their 
hidden holes and corners. Only hidden holes and corners had been 
possible for them because they had existed in spite of the 
protest of their world and the vigilance of its policemen. They 
had tried many refuges before they found the Barracks. No one 
but resented the existence of a troop of noisy vagabonds. But 
somehow this man knew that there had evolved from it something 
more than mere noisy playthat heThe Rathad MEANT order and 
discipline. 
``His men!'' It made him feel as if he had had the Victoria 
Cross fastened on his coat. He had brain enough to see many 
thingsand he knew that it was in this way that Loristan was 
finding him his ``place.'' He knew how. 
When they went to the Barracksthe Squad greeted them with a 
tumultuous welcome which expressed a great sense of relief. 
Privately the members had been filled with fears which they had 
talked over together in deep gloom. Marco's fatherthey 
decidedwas too big a swell to let the two come back after he 
had seen the sort the Squad was made up of. He might be poor 
just nowtoffs sometimes lost their money for a bitbut you 
could see what he wasand fathers like him weren't going to let 
their sons make friends with ``such as us.'' He'd stop the drill 
and the ``Secret Society'' game. That's what he'd do! 
But The Rat came swinging in on his secondhand crutches looking 
as if he had been made a generaland Marco came with him; and 
the drill the Squad was put through was stricter and finer than 
any drill they had ever known. 
``I wish my father could have seen that'' Marco said to The Rat. 
The Rat turned red and white and then red againbut he said not 
a single word. The mere thought was like a flash of fire passing 
through him. But no fellow could hope for a thing as big as 
that. The Secret Partyin its subterranean cavernsurrounded 
by its piled armssat down to read the morning paper. 
The war news was bad to read. The Maranovitch held the day for 
the momentand while they suffered and wrought cruelties in the 
capital citythe Iarovitch suffered and wrought cruelties in the 
country outside. So fierce and dark was the record that Europe 
stood aghast. 
The Rat folded his paper when he had finishedand sat biting his 
nails. Having done this for a few minuteshe began to speak in 
his dramatic and hollow Secret Party whisper. 
``The hour has come'' he said to his followers. ``The 
messengers must go forth. They know nothing of what they go for; 
they only know that they must obey. If they were caught and 
torturedthey could betray nothing because they know nothing but 
thatat certain placesthey must utter a certain word. They 
carry no papers. All commands they must learn by heart. When 
the sign is giventhe Secret Party will know what to do--where 
to meet and where to attack.'' 
He drew plans of the battle on the flagstonesand he sketched an 
imaginary route which the two messengers were to follow. But his 
knowledge of the map of Europe was not worth muchand he turned 
to Marco. 
``You know more about geography that I do. You know more about 
everything'' he said. ``I only know Italy is at the bottom and 
Russia is at one side and England's at the other. How would the 
Secret Messengers go to Samavia? Can you draw the countries 
they'd have to pass through?'' 
Because any school-boy who knew the map could have done the same 
thingMarco drew them. He also knew the stations the Secret Two 
would arrive at and leave by when they entered a citythe 
streets they would walk through and the very uniforms they would 
see; but of these things he said nothing. The reality his 
knowledge gave to the game washowevera thrilling thing. He 
wished he could have been free to explain to The Rat the things 
he knew. Together they could have worked out so many details of 
travel and possible adventure that it would have been almost as 
if they had set out on their journey in fact. 
As it wasthe mere sketching of the route fired The Rat's 
imagination. He forged ahead with the story of adventureand 
filled it with such mysterious purport and design that the Squad 
at times gasped for breath. In his glowing version the Secret 
Two entered cities by midnight and sang and begged at palace 
gates where kings driving outward paused to listen and were given 
the Sign. 
``Though it would not always be kings'' he said. ``Sometimes it 
would be the poorest people. Sometimes they might seem to be 
beggars like ourselveswhen they were only Secret Ones 
disguised. A great lord might wear poor clothes and pretend to 
be a workmanand we should only know him by the signs we had 
learned by heart. When we were sent to Samaviawe should be 
obliged to creep in through some back part of the country where 
no fighting was being done and where no one would attack. Their 
generals are not clever enough to protect the parts which are 
joined to friendly countriesand they have not forces enough. 
Two boys could find a way in if they thought it out.'' 
He became possessed by the idea of thinking it out on the spot. 
He drew his rough map of Samavia on the flagstones with his 
chalk. 
``Look here'' he said to Marcowhowith the elated and 
thrilled Squadbent over it in a close circle of heads. 
``Beltrazo is here and Carnolitz is here--and here is Jiardasia. 
Beltrazo and Jiardasia are friendlythough they don't take 
sides. All the fighting is going on in the country about 
Melzarr. There is no reason why they should prevent single 
travelers from coming in across the frontiers of friendly 
neighbors. They're not fighting with the countries outsidethey 
are fighting with themselves.'' He paused a moment and thought. 
``The article in that magazine said something about a huge forest 
on the eastern frontier. That's here. We could wander into a 
forest and stay there until we'd planned all we wanted to do. 
Even the people who had seen us would forget about us. What we 
have to do is to make people feel as if we were 
nothing--nothing.'' 
They were in the very midst of itcrowded togetherleaning 
overstretching necks and breathing quickly with excitement
when Marco lifted his head. Some mysterious impulse made him do 
it in spite of himself. 
``There's my father!'' he said. 
The chalk droppedeverything droppedeven Samavia. The Rat was 
up and on his crutches as if some magic force had swung him 
there. How he gave the commandor if he gave it at allnot 
even he himself knew. But the Squad stood at salute. 
Loristan was standing at the opening of the archway as Marco had 
stood that first day. He raised his right hand in return salute 
and came forward. 
``I was passing the end of the street and remembered the Barracks 
was here'' he explained. ``I thought I should like to look at 
your menCaptain.'' 
He smiledbut it was not a smile which made his words really a 
joke. He looked down at the chalk map drawn on the flagstones. 
``You know that map well'' he said. ``Even I can see that it is 
Samavia. What is the Secret Party doing?'' 
``The messengers are trying to find a way in'' answered Marco. 
``We can get in there'' said The Ratpointing with a crutch. 
``There's a forest where we could hide and find out things.'' 
``Reconnoiter'' said Loristanlooking down. ``Yes. Two stray 
boys could be very safe in a forest. It's a good game.'' 
That he should be there! That he shouldin his own wonderful 
wayhave given them such a thing as this. That he should have 
cared enough even to look up the Barrackswas what The Rat was 
thinking. A batch of ragamuffins they were and nothing elseand 
he standing looking at them with his fine smile. There was 
something about him which made him seem even splendid. The Rat's 
heart thumped with startled joy. 
``Father'' said Marco``will you watch The Rat drill us? I 
want you to see how well it is done.'' 
``Captainwill you do me that honor?'' Loristan said to The Rat
and to even these words he gave the right toneneither jesting 
nor too serious. Because it was so right a toneThe Rat's 
pulses beat only with exultation. This god of his had looked at 
his mapshe had talked of his planshe had come to see the 
soldiers who were his work! The Rat began his drill as if he had 
been reviewing an army. 
What Loristan saw done was wonderful in its mechanical exactness. 
The Squad moved like the perfect parts of a perfect machine. 
That they could so do it in such spaceand that they should have 
accomplished such precisionwas an extraordinary testimonial to 
the military efficiency and curious qualities of this one 
hunchbackedvagabond officer. 
``That is magnificent!'' the spectator saidwhen it was over. 
``It could not be better done. Allow me to congratulate you.'' 
He shook The Rat's hand as if it had been a man'sandafter he 
had shaken ithe put his own hand lightly on the boy's shoulder 
and let it rest there as he talked a few minutes to them all. 
He kept his talk within the gameand his clear comprehension of 
it added a flavor which even the dullest member of the Squad was 
elated by. Sometimes you couldn't understand toffs when they 
made a shy at being friendlybut you could understand himand 
he stirred up your spirits. He didn't make jokes with you
eitheras if a chap had to be kept grinning. After the few 
minutes were overhe went away. Then they sat down again in 
their circle and talked about himbecause they could talk and 
think about nothing else. They stared at Marco furtively
feeling as if he were a creature of another world because he had 
lived with this man. They stared at The Rat in a new way also. 
The wonderful-looking hand had rested on his shoulderand he had 
been told that what he had done was magnificent. 
``When you said you wished your father could have seen the 
drill'' said The Rat``you took my breath away. I'd never have 
had the cheek to think of it myself--and I'd never have dared to 
let you ask himeven if you wanted to do it. And he came 
himself! It struck me dumb.'' 
``If he came'' said Marco``it was because he wanted to see 
it.'' 
When they had finished talkingit was time for Marco and The Rat 
to go on their way. Loristan had given The Rat an errand. At a 
certain hour he was to present himself at a certain shop and 
receive a package. 
``Let him do it alone'' Loristan said to Marco. ``He will be 
better pleased. His desire is to feel that he is trusted to do 
things alone.'' 
So they parted at a street cornerMarco to walk back to No. 7 
Philibert PlaceThe Rat to execute his commission. Marco turned 
into one of the better streetsthrough which he often passed on 
his way home. It was not a fashionable quarterbut it contained 
some respectable houses in whose windows here and there were to 
be seen neat cards bearing the word ``Apartments'' which meant 
that the owner of the house would let to lodgers his drawing-room 
or sitting-room suite. 
As Marco walked up the streethe saw some one come out of the 
door of one of the houses and walk quickly and lightly down the 
pavement. It was a young woman wearing an elegant though quiet 
dressand a hat which looked as if it had been bought in Paris 
or Vienna. She hadin facta slightly foreign airand it was 
thisindeedwhich made Marco look at her long enough to see 
that she was also a graceful and lovely person. He wondered what 
her nationality was. Even at some yards' distance he could see 
that she had long dark eyes and a curved mouth which seemed to be 
smiling to itself. He thought she might be Spanish or Italian. 
He was trying to decide which of the two countries she belonged 
toas she drew near to himbut quite suddenly the curved mouth 
ceased smiling as her foot seemed to catch in a break in the 
pavementand she so lost her balance that she would have fallen 
if he had not leaped forward and caught her. 
She was light and slenderand he was a strong lad and managed to 
steady her. An expression of sharp momentary anguish crossed her 
face. 
``I hope you are not hurt'' Marco said. 
She bit her lip and clutched his shoulder very hard with her slim 
hand. 
``I have twisted my ankle'' she answered. ``I am afraid I have 
twisted it badly. Thank you for saving me. I should have had a 
bad fall.'' 
Her longdark eyes were very sweet and grateful. She tried to 
smilebut there was such distress under the effort that Marco 
was afraid she must have hurt herself very much. 
``Can you stand on your foot at all?'' he asked. 
``I can stand a little now'' she said``but I might not be able 
to stand in a few minutes. I must get back to the house while I 
can bear to touch the ground with it. I am so sorry. I am 
afraid I shall have to ask you to go with me. Fortunately it is 
only a few yards away.'' 
``Yes'' Marco answered. ``I saw you come out of the house. If 
you will lean on my shoulderI can soon help you back. I am 
glad to do it. Shall we try now?'' 
She had a gentle and soft manner which would have appealed to any 
boy. Her voice was musical and her enunciation exquisite. 
Whether she was Spanish or Italianit was easy to imagine her a 
person who did not always live in London lodgingseven of the 
better class. 
``If you please'' she answered him. ``It is very kind of you. 
You are very strongI see. But I am glad to have only a few 
steps to go.'' 
She rested on his shoulder as well as on her umbrellabut it was 
plain that every movement gave her intense pain. She caught her 
lip with her teethand Marco thought she turned white. He could 
not help liking her. She was so lovely and gracious and brave. 
He could not bear to see the suffering in her face. 
``I am so sorry!'' he saidas he helped herand his boy's voice 
had something of the wonderful sympathetic tone of Loristan's. 
The beautiful lady herself remarked itand thought how unlike it 
was to the ordinary boy-voice. 
``I have a latch-key'' she saidwhen they stood on the low 
step. 
She found the latch-key in her purse and opened the door. Marco 
helped her into the entrance-hall. She sat down at once in a 
chair near the hat-stand. The place was quite plain and 
old-fashioned inside. 
``Shall I ring the front-door bell to call some one?'' Marco 
inquired. 
``I am afraid that the servants are out'' she answered. ``They 
had a holiday. Will you kindly close the door? I shall be 
obliged to ask you to help me into the sitting-room at the end of 
the hall. I shall find all I want there--if you will kindly hand 
me a few things. Some one may come in presently--perhaps one of 
the other lodgers --andeven if I am alone for an hour or soit 
will not really matter.'' 
``Perhaps I can find the landlady'' Marco suggested. The 
beautiful person smiled. 
``She has gone to her sister's wedding. That is why I was going 
out to spend the day myself. I arranged the plan to accommodate 
her. How good you are! I shall be quite comfortable directly
really. I can get to my easy-chair in the sitting-room now I 
have rested a little.'' 
Marco helped her to her feetand her sharpinvoluntary 
exclamation of pain made him wince internally. Perhaps it was a 
worse sprain than she knew. 
The house was of the early-Victorian London order. A ``front 
lobby'' with a dining-room on the right handand a ``back 
lobby'' after the foot of the stairs was passedout of which 
opened the basement kitchen staircase and a sitting-room looking 
out on a gloomy flagged back yard inclosed by high walls. The 
sitting-room was rather gloomy itselfbut there were a few 
luxurious things among the ordinary furnishings. There was an 
easy-chair with a small table near itand on the table were a 
silver lamp and some rather elegant trifles. Marco helped his 
charge to the easy-chair and put a cushion from the sofa under 
her foot. He did it very gentlyandas he rose after doing it
he saw that the longsoft dark eyes were looking at him in a 
curious way. 
``I must go away now'' he said``but I do not like to leave 
you. May I go for a doctor?'' 
``How dear you are!'' she exclaimed. ``But I do not want one
thank you. I know exactly what to do for a sprained ankle. And 
perhaps mine is not really a sprain. I am going to take off my 
shoe and see.'' 
``May I help you?'' Marco askedand he kneeled down again and 
carefully unfastened her shoe and withdrew it from her foot. It 
was a slender and delicate foot in a silk stockingand she bent 
and gently touched and rubbed it. 
``No'' she saidwhen she raised herself``I do not think it is 
a sprain. Now that the shoe is off and the foot rests on the 
cushionit is much more comfortablemuch more. Thank you
thank you. If you had not been passing I might have had a 
dangerous fall.'' 
``I am very glad to have been able to help you'' Marco answered
with an air of relief. ``Now I must goif you think you will be 
all right.'' 
``Don't go yet'' she saidholding out her hand. ``I should 
like to know you a little betterif I may. I am so grateful. I 
should like to talk to you. You have such beautiful manners for 
a boy'' she 
endedwith a prettykind laugh``and I believe I know where 
you got them from.'' 
``You are very kind to me'' Marco answeredwondering if he did 
not redden a little. ``But I must go because my father will--'' 
``Your father would let you stay and talk to me'' she saidwith 
even a prettier kindliness than before. ``It is from him you 
have inherited your beautiful manner. He was once a friend of 
mine. I hope he is my friend stillthough perhaps he has 
forgotten me.'' 
All that Marco had ever learned and all that he had ever trained 
himself to rememberquickly rushed back upon him nowbecause he 
had a clear and rapidly working brainand had not lived the 
ordinary boy's life. Here was a beautiful lady of whom he knew 
nothing at all but that she had twisted her foot in the street 
and he had helped her back into her house. If silence was still 
the orderit was not for him to know things or ask questions or 
answer them. She might be the loveliest lady in the world and 
his father her dearest friendbuteven if this were sohe 
could best serve them both by obeying her friend's commands with 
all courtesyand forgetting no instruction he had given. 
``I do not think my father ever forgets any one'' he answered. 
``NoI am sure he does not'' she said softly. ``Has he been to 
Samavia during the last three years?'' 
Marco paused a moment. 
``Perhaps I am not the boy you think I am'' he said. ``My 
father has never been to Samavia.'' 
``He has not? But--you are Marco Loristan?'' 
``Yes. That is my name.'' 
Suddenly she leaned forward and her long lovely eyes filled with 
fire. 
``Then you are a Samavianand you know of the disasters 
overwhelming us. You know all the hideousness and barbarity of 
what is being done. Your father's son must know it all!'' 
``Every one knows it'' said Marco. 
``But it is your country--your own! Your blood must burn in your 
veins!'' 
Marco stood quite still and looked at her. His eyes told whether 
his blood burned or notbut he did not speak. His look was 
answer enoughsince he did not wish to say anything. 
``What does your father think? I am a Samavian myselfand I 
think night and day. What does he think of the rumor about the 
descendant of the Lost Prince? Does he believe it?'' 
Marco was thinking very rapidly. Her beautiful face was glowing 
with emotionher beautiful voice trembled. That she should be a 
Samavianand love Samaviaand pour her feeling forth even to a 
boywas deeply moving to him. But howsoever one was movedone 
must remember that silence was still the order. When one was 
very youngone must remember orders first of all. 
``It might be only a newspaper story'' he said. ``He says one 
cannot trust such things. If you know himyou know he is very 
calm.'' 
``Has he taught you to be calm too?'' she said pathetically. 
``You are only a boy. Boys are not calm. Neither are women when 
their hearts are wrung. Ohmy Samavia! Ohmy poor little 
country! My bravetortured country!'' and with a sudden sob she 
covered her face with her hands. 
A great lump mounted to Marco's throat. Boys could not crybut 
he knew what she meant when he said her heart was wrung. 
When she lifted her headthe tears in her eyes made them softer 
than ever. 
``If I were a million Samavians instead of one womanI should 
know what to do!'' she cried. ``If your father were a million 
Samavianshe would knowtoo. He would find Ivor's descendant
if he is on the earthand he would end all this horror!'' 
``Who would not end it if they could?'' cried Marcoquite 
fiercely. 
``But men like your fathermen who are Samaviansmust think 
night and day about it as I do'' she impetuously insisted. 
``You seeI cannot help pouring my thoughts out even to a 
boy--because he is a Samavian. Only Samavians care. Samavia 
seems so little and unimportant to other people. They don't even 
seem to know that the blood she is pouring forth pours from human 
veins and beating human hearts. Men like your father must think
and planand feel that they must--must find a way. Even a 
woman feels it. Even a boy must. Stefan Loristan cannot be 
sitting quietly at homeknowing that Samavian hearts are being 
shot through and Samavian blood poured forth. He cannot think 
and say NOTHING!'' 
Marco started in spite of himself. He felt as if his father had 
been struck in the face. How dare she say such words! Big as he 
wassuddenly he looked biggerand the beautiful lady saw that 
he did. 
``He is my father'' he said slowly. 
She was a cleverbeautiful personand saw that she had made a 
great mistake. 
``You must forgive me'' she exclaimed. ``I used the wrong words 
because I was excited. That is the way with women. You must see 
that I meant that I knew he was giving his heart and strength
his whole beingto Samaviaeven though he must stay in 
London.'' 
She started and turned her head to listen to the sound of some 
one using the latch-key and opening the front door. The some one 
came in with the heavy step of a man. 
``It is one of the lodgers'' she said. ``I think it is the one 
who lives in the third floor sitting-room.'' 
``Then you won't be alone when I go'' said Marco. ``I am glad 
some one has come. I will say good-morning. May I tell my 
father your name?'' 
``Tell me that you are not angry with me for expressing myself so 
awkwardly'' she said. 
``You couldn't have meant it. I know that'' Marco answered 
boyishly. ``You couldn't.'' 
``NoI couldn't'' she repeatedwith the same emphasis on the 
words. 
She took a card from a silver case on the table and gave it to 
him. 
``Your father will remember my name'' she said. ``I hope he 
will let me see him and tell him how you took care of me.'' 
She shook his hand warmly and let him go. But just as he reached 
the door she spoke again. 
``Ohmay I ask you to do one thing more before you leave me?'' 
she said suddenly. ``I hope you won't mind. Will you run 
up-stairs into the drawing-room and bring me the purple book from 
the small table? I shall not mind being alone if I have 
something to read.'' 
``A purple book? On a small table?'' said Marco. 
``Between the two long windows'' she smiled back at him. 
The drawing-room of such houses as these is always to be reached 
by one short flight of stairs. 
Marco ran up lightly. 
MARCO DOES NOT ANSWER 
By the time he turned the corner of the stairsthe beautiful 
lady had risen from her seat in the back room and walked into the 
dining-room at the front. A heavily-builtdark-bearded man was 
standing inside the door as if waiting for her. 
``I could do nothing with him'' she said at oncein her soft 
voicespeaking quite prettily and gentlyas if what she said 
was the most natural thing in the world. ``I managed the little 
trick of the sprained foot really welland got him into the 
house. He is an amiable boy with perfect mannersand I thought 
it might be easy to surprise him into saying more than he knew he 
was saying. You can generally do that with children and young 
things. But he either knows nothing or has been trained to hold 
his tongue. He's not stupidand he's of a high spirit. I made 
a pathetic little scene about Samaviabecause I saw he could be 
worked up. It did work him up. I tried him with the Lost Prince 
rumor; butif there is truth in ithe does not or will not 
know. I tried to make him lose his temper and betray something 
in defending his fatherwhom he thinks a godby the way. But I 
made a mistake. I saw that. It's a pity. Boys can sometimes be 
made to tell anything.'' She spoke very quickly under her 
breath. The man spoke quickly too. 
``Where is he?'' he asked. 
``I sent him up to the drawing-room to look for a book. He will 
look for a few minutes. Listen. He's an innocent boy. He sees 
me only as a gentle angel. Nothing will SHAKE him so much as to 
hear me tell him the truth suddenly. It will be such a shock to 
him that perhaps you can do something with him then. He may lose 
his hold on himself. He's only a boy.'' 
``You're right'' said the bearded man. ``And when he finds out 
he is not free to goit may alarm him and we may get something 
worth while.'' 
``If we could find out what is trueor what Loristan thinks is 
truewe should have a clue to work from'' she said. 
``We have not much time'' the man whispered. ``We are ordered 
to Bosnia at once. Before midnight we must be on the way.'' 
``Let us go into the other room. He is coming.'' 
When Marco entered the roomthe heavily-built man with the 
pointed dark beard was standing by the easy-chair. 
``I am sorry I could not find the book'' he apologized. ``I 
looked on all the tables.'' 
``I shall be obliged to go and search for it myself'' said the 
Lovely Person. 
She rose from her chair and stood up smiling. And at her first 
movement Marco saw that she was not disabled in the least. 
``Your foot!'' he exclaimed. ``It's better?'' 
``It wasn't hurt'' she answeredin her softly pretty voice and 
with her softly pretty smile. ``I only made you think so.'' 
It was part of her plan to spare him nothing of shock in her 
sudden transformation. Marco felt his breath leave him for a 
moment. 
``I made you believe I was hurt because I wanted you to come into 
the house with me'' she added. ``I wished to find out certain 
things I am sure you know.'' 
``They were things about Samavia'' said the man. ``Your father 
knows themand you must know something of them at least. It is 
necessary that we should hear what you can tell us. We shall not 
allow you to leave the house until you have answered certain 
questions I shall ask you.'' 
Then Marco began to understand. He had heard his father speak of 
political spiesmen and women who were paid to trace the people 
that certain governments or political parties desired to have 
followed and observed. He knew it was their work to search out 
secretsto disguise themselves and live among innocent people as 
if they were merely ordinary neighbors. 
They must be spies who were paid to follow his father because he 
was a Samavian and a patriot. He did not know that they had 
taken the house two months beforeand had accomplished several 
things during their apparently innocent stay in it. They had 
discovered Loristan and had learned to know his outgoings and 
incomingsand also the outgoings and incomings of Lazarus
Marcoand The Rat. But they meantif possibleto learn other 
things. If the boy could be startled and terrified into 
unconscious revelationsit might prove well worth their while to 
have played this bit of melodrama before they locked the front 
door behind them and hastily crossed the Channelleaving their 
landlord to discover for himself that the house had been vacated. 
In Marco's mind strange things were happening. They were spies! 
But that was not all. The Lovely Person had been right when she 
said that he would receive a shock. His strong young chest 
swelled. In all his lifehe had never come face to face with 
black treachery before. He could not grasp it. This gentle and 
friendly being with the grateful soft voice and grateful soft 
eyes had betrayed--BETRAYED him! It seemed impossible to believe 
itand yet the smile on herm curved mouth told him that it was 
true. When he had sprung to help hershe had been playing a 
trick! When he had been sorry for her pain and had winced at the 
sound of her low exclamationshe had been deliberately laying a 
trap to harm him. For a few seconds he was stunned--perhapsif 
he had not been his father's sonhe might have been stunned 
only. But he was more. When the first seconds had passedthere 
arose slowly within him a sense of something like highremote 
disdain. It grew in his deep boy's eyes as he gazed directly 
into the pupils of the long soft dark ones. His body felt as if 
it were growing taller. 
``You are very clever'' he said slowly. Thenafter a second's 
pausehe added``I was too young to know that there was any one 
so--clever--in the world.'' 
The Lovely Person laughedbut she did not laugh easily. She 
spoke to her companion. 
``A grand seigneur!'' she said. ``As one looks at himone half 
believes it is true.'' 
The man with the beard was looking very angry. His eyes were 
savage and his dark skin reddened. Marco thought that he looked 
at him as if he hated himand was made fierce by the mere sight 
of himfor some mysterious reason. 
``Two days before you left Moscow'' he said``three men came to 
see your father. They looked like peasants. They talked to him 
for more than an hour. They brought with them a roll of 
parchment. Is that not true?'' 
``I know nothing'' said Marco. 
``Before you went to Moscowyou were in Budapest. You went 
there from Vienna. You were there for three monthsand your 
father saw many people. Some of them came in the middle of the 
night.'' 
``I know nothing'' said Marco. 
``You have spent your life in traveling from one country to 
another'' persisted the man. ``You know the European languages 
as if you were a courieror the portier in a Viennese hotel. Do 
you not?'' 
Marco did not answer. 
The Lovely Person began to speak to the man rapidly in Russian. 
``A spy and an adventurer Stefan Loristan has always been and 
always will be'' she said. ``We know what he is. The police in 
every capital in Europe know him as a sharper and a vagabondas 
well as a spy. And yetwith all his clevernesshe does not 
seem to have money. What did he do with the bribe the 
Maranovitch gave him for betraying what he knew of the old 
fortress? The boy doesn't even suspect him. Perhaps it's true 
that he knows nothing. Or perhaps it is true that he has been so 
ill-treated and flogged from his babyhood that he dare not speak. 
There is a cowed look in his eyes in spite of his childish 
swagger. He's been both starved and beaten.'' 
The outburst was well done. She did not look at Marco as she 
poured forth her words. She spoke with the abruptness and 
impetuosity of a person whose feelings had got the better of her. 
If Marco was sensitive about his fathershe felt sure that his 
youth would make his face reveal something if his tongue did 
not--if he understood Russianwhich was one of the things it 
would be useful to find outbecause it was a fact which would 
verify many other things. 
Marco's face disappointed her. No change took place in itand 
the blood did not rise to the surface of his skin. He listened 
with an uninterested airblank and cold and polite. Let them 
say what they chose. 
The man twisted his pointed beard and shrugged his shoulders. 
``We have a good little wine-cellar downstairs'' he said. ``You 
are going down into itand you will probably stay there for some 
time if you do not make up your mind to answer my questions. You 
think that nothing can happen to you in a house in a London 
street where policemen walk up and down. But you are mistaken. 
If you yelled noweven if any one chanced to hear youthey 
would only think you were a lad getting a thrashing he deserved. 
You can yell as much as you like in the black little wine-cellar
and no one will hear at all. We only took this house for three 
monthsand we shall leave it to-night without mentioning the 
fact to any 
one. If we choose to leave you in the wine-cellaryou will wait 
there until somebody begins to notice that no one goes in and 
outand chances to mention it to the landlord--which few people 
would take the trouble to do. Did you come here from Moscow?'' 
``I know nothing'' said Marco. 
``You might remain in the good little black cellar an 
unpleasantly long time before you were found'' the man went on
quite coolly. ``Do you remember the peasants who came to see 
your father two nights before you left?'' 
``I know nothing'' said Marco. 
``By the time it was discovered that the house was empty and 
people came in to make sureyou might be too weak to call out 
and attract their attention. Did you go to Budapest from Vienna
and were you there for three months?'' asked the inquisitor. 
``I know nothing'' said Marco. 
``You are too good for the little black cellar'' put in the 
Lovely Person. ``I like you. Don't go into it!'' 
``I know nothing'' Marco answeredbut the eyes which were like 
Loristan's gave her just such a look as Loristan would have given 
herand she felt it. It made her uncomfortable. 
``I don't believe you were ever ill-treated or beaten'' she 
said. ``I tell youthe little black cellar will be a hard 
thing. Don't go there!'' 
And this time Marco said nothingbut looked at her still as if 
he were some great young noble who was very proud. 
He knew that every word the bearded man had spoken was true. To 
cry out would be of no use. If they went away and left him 
behind themthere was no knowing how many days would pass before 
the people of the neighborhood would begin to suspect that the 
place had been desertedor how long it would be before it 
occurred to some one to give warning to the owner. And in the 
meantimeneither his father nor Lazarus nor The Rat would have 
the faintest reason for guessing where he was. And he would be 
sitting alone in the dark in the wine-cellar. He did not know in 
the least what to do about this thing. He only knew that silence 
was still the order. 
``It is a jet-black little hole'' the man said. ``You might 
crack your throat in itand no one would hear. Did men come to 
talk with your father in the middle of the night when you were in 
Vienna?'' 
``I know nothing'' said Marco. 
``He won't tell'' said the Lovely Person. ``I am sorry for this 
boy.'' 
``He may tell after he has sat in the good little black 
wine-cellar for a few hours'' said the man with the pointed 
beard. ``Come with me!'' 
He put his powerful hand on Marco's shoulder and pushed him 
before him. Marco made no struggle. He remembered what his 
father had said about the game not being a game. It wasn't a 
game nowbut somehow he had a strong haughty feeling of not 
being afraid. 
He was taken through the hallwaytoward the rearand down the 
commonplace flagged steps which led to the basement. Then he was 
marched through a narrowill-lightedflagged passage to a door 
in the wall. The door was not locked and stood a trifle ajar. 
His companion pushed it farther open and showed part of a winecellar 
which was so dark that it was only the shelves nearest the 
door that Marco could faintly see. His captor pushed him in and 
shut the door. It was as black a hole as he had described. 
Marco stood still in the midst of darkness like black velvet. 
His guard turned the key. 
``The peasants who came to your father in Moscow spoke Samavian 
and were big men. Do you remember them?'' he asked from outside. 
``I know nothing'' answered Marco. 
``You are a young fool'' the voice replied. ``And I believe you 
know even more than we thought. Your father will be greatly 
troubled when you do not come home. I will come back to see you 
in a few hoursif it is possible. I will tell youhowever
that I have had disturbing news which might make it necessary for 
us to leave the house in a hurry. I might not have time to come 
down here again before leaving.'' 
Marco stood with his back against a bit of wall and remained 
silent. 
There was stillness for a few minutesand then there was to be 
heard the sound of footsteps marching away. 
When the last distant echo died all was quite silentand Marco 
drew a long breath. Unbelievable as it may appearit was in one 
sense almost a breath of relief. In the rush of strange feeling 
which had swept over him when he found himself facing the 
astounding situation up-stairsit had not been easy to realize 
what his thoughts really were; there were so many of them and 
they came so fast. How could he quite believe the evidence of 
his eyes and ears? A few minutesonly a few minuteshad 
changed his prettily grateful and kindly acquaintance into a 
subtle and cunning creature whose love for Samavia had been part 
of a plot to harm it and to harm his father. 
What did she and her companion want to do--what could they do if 
they knew the things they were trying to force him to tell? 
Marco braced his back against the wall stoutly. 
``What will it be best to think about first?'' 
This he said because one of the most absorbingly fascinating 
things he and his father talked about together was the power of 
the thoughts which human beings allow to pass through their 
minds--the strange strength of them. When they talked of this
Marco felt as if he were listening to some marvelous Eastern 
story of magic which was true. In Loristan's travelshe had 
visited the far Oriental countriesand he had seen and learned 
many things which seemed marvelsand they had taught him deep 
thinking. He had knownand reasoned through days with men who 
believed that when they desired a thingclear and exalted 
thought would bring it to them. He had discovered why they 
believed thisand had learned to understand their profound 
arguments. 
What he himself believedhe had taught Marco quite simply from 
his childhood. It was this: he himself--Marcowith the strong 
boy-bodythe thick mat of black hairand the patched clothes-was 
the magician. He held and waved his wand himself--and his 
wand was his own Thought. When special privation or anxiety 
beset themit was their rule to say``What will it be best to 
think about first?'' which was Marco's reason for saying it to 
himself now as he stood in the darkness which was like black 
velvet. 
He waited a few minutes for the right thing to come to him. 
``I will think of the very old hermit who lived on the ledge of 
the mountains in India and who let my father talk to him through 
all one night'' he said at last. This had been a wonderful 
story and one of his favorites. Loristan had traveled far to see 
this ancient Buddhistand what he had seen and heard during that 
one night had made changes in his life. The part of the story 
which came back to Marco now was these words: 
``Let pass through thy mindmy sononly the image thou wouldst 
desire to see a truth. Meditate only upon the wish of thy heart
seeing first that it can injure no man and is not ignoble. Then 
will it take earthly form and draw near to thee. This is the law 
of that which creates.'' 
``I am not afraid'' Marco said aloud. ``I shall not be afraid. 
In some way I shall get out.'' 
This was the image he wanted most to keep steadily in his mind 
--that nothing could make him afraidand that in some way he 
would get out of the wine-cellar. 
He thought of this for some minutesand said the words over 
several times. He felt more like himself when he had done it. 
``When my eyes are accustomed to the darknessI shall see if 
there is any little glimmer of light anywhere'' he said next. 
He waited with patienceand it seemed for some time that he saw 
no glimmer at all. He put out his hands on either side of him
and found thaton the side of the wall against which he stood
there seemed to be no shelves. Perhaps the cellar had been used 
for other purposes than the storing of wineandif that was 
truethere might be somewhere some opening for ventilation. The 
air was not badbut then the door had not been shut tightly when 
the man opened it. 
``I am not afraid'' he repeated. ``I shall not be afraid. In 
some way I shall get out.'' 
He would not allow himself to stop and think about his father 
waiting for his return. He knew that would only rouse his 
emotions and weaken his courage. He began to feel his way 
carefully along the wall. It reached farther than he had thought 
it would. 
The cellar was not so very small. He crept round it gradually
andwhen he had crept round ithe made his way across it
keeping his hands extended before him and setting down each foot 
cautiously. Then he sat down on the stone floor and thought 
againand what he thought was of the things the old Buddhist had 
told his fatherand that there was a way out of this place for 
himand he should somehow find itandbefore too long a time 
had passedbe walking in the street again. 
It was while he was thinking in this way that he felt a startling 
thing. It seemed almost as if something touched him. It made 
him jumpthough the touch was so light and soft that it was 
scarcely a touch at allin fact he could not be sure that he had 
not imagined it. He stood up and leaned against the wall again. 
Perhaps the suddenness of his movement placed him at some angle 
he had not reached beforeor perhaps his eyes had become more 
completely accustomed to the darknessforas he turned his head 
to listenhe made a discovery: above the door there was a place 
where the velvet blackness was not so dense. There was something 
like a slit in the wallthoughas it did not open upon daylight 
but upon the dark passageit was not light it admitted so much 
as a lesser shade of darkness. But even that was better than 
nothingand Marco drew another long breath. 
``That is only the beginning. I shall find a way out'' he said. 
``I SHALL.'' 
He remembered reading a story of a man whobeing shut by 
accident in a safety vaultpassed through such terrors before 
his release that he believed he had spent two days and nights in 
the place when he had been there only a few hours. 
``His thoughts did that. I must remember. I will sit down again 
and begin thinking of all the pictures in the cabinet rooms of 
the Art History Museum in Vienna. It will take some timeand 
then there are the others'' he said. 
It was a good plan. While he could keep his mind upon the game 
which had helped him to pass so many dull hourshe could think 
of nothing elseas it required close attention--and perhapsas 
the day went onhis captors would begin to feel that it was not 
safe to run the risk of doing a thing as desperate as this would 
be. They might think better of it before they left the house at 
least. In any casehe had learned enough from Loristan to 
realize that only harm could come from letting one's mind run 
wild. 
``A mind is either an engine with broken and flying gearor a 
giant power under control'' was the thing they knew. 
He had walked in imagination through three of the cabinet rooms 
and was turning mentally into a fourthwhen he found himself 
starting again quite violently. This time it was not at a touch 
but at a sound. Surely it was a sound. And it was in the cellar 
with him. But it was the tiniest possible noisea ghost of a 
squeak and a suggestion of a movement. It came from the opposite 
side of the cellarthe side where the shelves were. He looked 
across in the darkness saw a light which there could be no 
mistake about. It WAS a lighttwo lights indeedtwo round 
phosphorescent greenish balls. They were two eyes staring at 
him. And then he heard another sound. Not a squeak this time
but something so homely and comfortable that he actually burst 
out laughing. It was a cat purringa nice warm cat! And she 
was curled up on one of the lower shelves purring to some 
new-born kittens. He knew there were kittens because it was 
plain now what the tiny squeak had beenand it was made plainer 
by the fact that he heard another much more distinct one and then 
another. They had all been asleep when he had come into the 
cellar. If the mother had been awakeshe had probably been very 
much afraid. Afterward she had perhaps come down from her shelf 
to investigateand had passed close to him. The feeling of 
relief which came upon him at this queer and simple discovery was 
wonderful. It was so natural and comfortable an every-day thing 
that it seemed to make spies and criminals unrealand only 
natural things possible. With a mother cat purring away among 
her kittenseven a dark wine-cellar was not so black. He got up 
and kneeled by the shelf. The greenish eyes did not shine in an 
unfriendly way. He could feel that the owner of them was a nice 
big catand he counted four round little balls of kittens. It 
was a curious delight to stroke the soft fur and talk to the 
mother cat. She answered with purringas if she liked the sense 
of friendly human nearness. Marco laughed to himself. 
``It's queer what a difference it makes!'' he said. ``It is 
almost like finding a window.'' 
The mere presence of these harmless living things was 
companionship. He sat down close to the low shelf and listened 
to the motherly purringnow and then speaking and putting out 
his hand to touch the warm fur. The phosphorescent light in the 
green eyes was a comfort in itself. 
``We shall get out of this--both of us'' he said. ``We shall 
not be here very longPuss-cat.'' 
He was not troubled by the fear of being really hungry for some 
time. He was so used to eating scantily from necessityand to 
passing long hours without food during his journeysthat he had 
proved to himself that fasting is notafter allsuch a 
desperate ordeal as most people imagine. If you begin by 
expecting to feel famished and by counting the hours between your 
mealsyou will begin to be ravenous. But he knew better. 
The time passed slowly; but he had known it would pass slowly
and he had made up his mind not to watch it nor ask himself 
questions about it. He was not a restless boybutlike his 
fathercould stand or sit or lie still. Now and then he could 
hear distant rumblings of carts and vans passing in the street. 
There was a certain degree of companionship in these also. He 
kept his place near the cat and his hand where he could 
occasionally touch her. He could lift his eyes now and then to 
the place where the dim glimmer of something like light showed 
itself. 
Perhaps the stillnessperhaps the darknessperhaps the purring 
of the mother catprobably all threecaused his thoughts to 
begin to travel through his mind slowly and more slowly. At last 
they ceased and he fell asleep. The mother cat purred for some 
timeand then fell asleep herself. 
A SOUND IN A DREAM 
Marco slept peacefully for several hours. There was nothing to 
awaken him during that time. But at the end of ithis sleep was 
penetrated by a definite sound. He had dreamed of hearing a 
voice at a distanceandas he tried in his dream to hear what 
it saida brief metallic ringing sound awakened him outright. 
It was over by the time he was fully consciousand at once he 
realized that the voice of his dream had been a real oneand was 
speaking still. It was the Lovely Person's voiceand she was 
speaking rapidlyas if she were in the greatest haste. She was 
speaking through the door. 
``You will have to search for it'' was all he heard. ``I have 
not a moment!'' Andas he listened to her hurriedly departing 
feetthere came to him with their hastening echoes the words
``You are too good for the cellar. I like you!'' 
He sprang to the door and tried itbut it was still locked. The 
feet ran up the cellar steps and through the upper halland the 
front door closed with a bang. The two people had gone awayas 
they had threatened. The voice had been excited as well as 
hurried. Something had happened to frighten themand they had 
left the house in great haste. 
Marco turned and stood with his back against the door. The cat 
had awakened and she was gazing at him with her green eyes. She 
began to purr encouragingly. She really helped Marco to think. 
He was thinking with all his might and trying to remember. 
``What did she come for? She came for something'' he said to 
himself. ``What did she say? I only heard part of itbecause I 
was asleep. The voice in the dream was part of it. The part I 
heard was`You will have to search for it. I have not a 
moment.' And as she ran down the passageshe called back`You 
are too good for the cellar. I like you.' '' He said the words 
over and over again and tried to recall exactly how they had 
soundedand also to recall the voice which had seemed to be part 
of a dream but had been a real thing. Then he began to try his 
favorite experiment. As he often tried the experiment of 
commanding his mind to go to sleepso he frequently experimented 
on commanding it to work for him --to help him to rememberto 
understandand to argue about things clearly. 
``Reason this out for me'' he said to it nowquite naturally 
and calmly. ``Show me what it means.'' 
What did she come for? It was certain that she was in too great 
a hurry to be ablewithout a reasonto spare the time to come. 
What was the reason? She had said she liked him. Then she came 
because she liked him. If she liked himshe came to do 
something which was not unfriendly. The only good thing she 
could do for him was something which would help him to get out of 
the cellar. She had said twice that he was too good for the 
cellar. If he had been awakehe would have heard all she said 
and have understood what she wanted him to do or meant to do for 
him. He must not stop even to think of that. The first words he 
had heard--what had they been? They had been less clear to him 
than her last because he had heard them only as he was awakening. 
But he thought he was sure that they had been``You will have to 
search for it.'' Search for it. For what? He thought and 
thought. What must he search for? 
He sat down on the floor of the cellar and held his head in his 
handspressing his eyes so hard that curious lights floated 
before them. 
``Tell me! Tell me!'' he said to that part of his being which 
the Buddhist anchorite had said held all knowledge and could tell 
a man everything if he called upon it in the right spirit. 
And in a few minuteshe recalled something which seemed so much 
a part of his sleep that he had not been sure that he had not 
dreamed it. The ringing sound! He sprang up on his feet with a 
little gasping shout. The ringing sound! It had been the ring 
of metalstriking as it fell. Anything made of metal might have 
sounded like that. She had thrown something made of metal into 
the cellar. She had thrown it through the slit in the bricks 
near the door. She liked himand said he was too good for his 
prison. She had thrown to him the only thing which could set him 
free. She had thrown him the KEY of the cellar! 
For a few minutes the feelings which surged through him were so 
full of strong excitement that they set his brain in a whirl. He 
knew what his father would say--that would not do. If he was to 
thinkhe must hold himself still and not let even joy overcome 
him. The key was in the black little cellarand he must find it 
in the dark. Even the woman who liked him enough to give him a 
chance of freedom knew that she must not open the door and let 
him out. There must be a delay. He would have to find the key 
himselfand it would be sure to take time. The chances were 
that they would be at a safe enough distance before he could get 
out. 
``I will kneel down and crawl on my hands and knees'' he said. 
``I will crawl back and forth and go over every inch of the floor 
with my hands until I find it. If I go over every inchI shall 
find it.'' 
So he kneeled down and began to crawland the cat watched him 
and purred. 
``We shall get outPuss-cat'' he said to her. ``I told you we 
should.'' 
He crawled from the door to the wall at the side of the shelves
and then he crawled back again. The key might be quite a small 
oneand it was necessary that he should pass his hands over 
every inchas he had said. The difficulty was to be surein 
the darknessthat he did not miss an inch. Sometimes he was not 
sure enoughand then he went over the ground again. He crawled 
backward and forwardand he crawled forward and backward. He 
crawled crosswise and lengthwisehe crawled diagonallyand he 
crawled round and round. But he did not find the key. If he had 
had only a little lightbut he had none. He was so absorbed in 
his search that he did not know he had been engaged in it for 
several hoursand that it was the middle of the night. But at 
last he realized that he must stop for a restbecause his knees 
were beginning to feel bruisedand the skin of his hands was 
sore as a result of the rubbing on the flags. The cat and her 
kittens had gone to sleep and awakened again two or three times. 
``But it is somewhere!'' he said obstinately. ``It is inside the 
cellar. I heard something fall which was made of metal. That 
was the ringing sound which awakened me.'' 
When he stood uphe found his body ached and he was very tired. 
He stretched himself and exercised his arms and legs. 
``I wonder how long I have been crawling about'' he thought. 
``But the key is in the cellar. It is in the cellar.'' 
He sat down near the cat and her familyandlaying his arm on 
the shelf above herrested his head on it. He began to think of 
another experiment. 
``I am so tiredI believe I shall go to sleep again. `Thought 
which Knows All' ''--he was quoting something the hermit had said 
to Loristan in their midnight talk--``Thought which Knows All! 
Show me this little thing. Lead me to it when I awake.'' 
And he did fall asleepsound and fast. 
He did not know that he slept all the rest of the night. But he 
did. When he awakenedit was daylight in the streetsand the 
milk-carts were beginning to jingle aboutand the early postmen 
were knocking big double-knocks at front doors. The cat may have 
heard the milk-cartsbut the actual fact was that she herself 
was hungry and wanted to go in search of food. Just as Marco 
lifted his head from his arm and sat upshe jumped down from her 
shelf and went to the door. She had expected to find it ajar as 
it had been before. When she found it shutshe scratched at it 
and was disturbed to find this of no use. Because she knew Marco 
was in the cellarshe felt she had a friend who would assist 
herand she miauled appealingly. 
This reminded Marco of the key. 
``I will when I have found it'' he said. ``It is inside the 
cellar.'' 
The cat miauled againthis time very anxiously indeed. The 
kittens heard her and began to squirm and squeak piteously. 
``Lead me to this little thing'' said Marcoas if speaking to 
Something in the darkness about himand he got up. 
He put his hand out toward the kittensand it touched something 
lying not far from them. It must have been lying near his elbow 
all night while he slept. 
It was the key! It had fallen upon the shelfand not on the 
floor at all. 
Marco picked it up and then stood still a moment. He made the 
sign of the cross. 
Then he found his way to the door and fumbled until he found the 
keyhole and got the key into it. Then he turned it and pushed 
the door open--and the cat ran out into the passage before him. 
THE RAT TO THE RESCUE 
Marco walked through the passage and into the kitchen part of the 
basement. The doors were all lockedand they were solid doors. 
He ran up the flagged steps and found the door at the top shut 
and bolted alsoand that too was a solid door. His jailers had 
plainly made sure that it should take time enough for him to make 
his way into the worldeven after he got out of the wine-cellar. 
The cat had run away to some part of the place where mice were 
plentiful. Marco was by this time rather gnawingly hungry 
himself. If he could get into the kitchenhe might find some 
fragments of food left in a cupboard; but there was no moving the 
locked door. He tried the outlet into the areabut that was 
immov-able. Then he saw near it a smaller door. It was 
evidently the entrance to the coal-cellar under the pavement. 
This was proved by the fact that trodden coal-dust marked the 
flagstonesand near it stood a scuttle with coal in it. 
This coal-scuttle was the thing which might help him! Above the 
area door was a small window which was supposed to light the 
entry. He could not reach itandif he reached ithe could 
not open it. He could throw pieces of coal at the glass and 
break itand then he could shout for help when people passed by. 
They might not notice or understand where the shouts came from at 
firstbutif he kept them upsome one's attention would be 
attracted in the end. 
He picked a large-sized solid piece of coal out of the heap in 
the scuttleand threw it with all his force against the grimy 
glass. It smashed through and left a big hole. He threw 
anotherand the entire pane was splintered and fell outside into 
the area. Then he saw it was broad daylightand guessed that he 
had been shut up a good many hours. There was plenty of coal in 
the scuttleand he had a strong arm and a good aim. He smashed 
pane after paneuntil only the framework remained. When he 
shoutedthere would be nothing between his voice and the street. 
No one could see himbut if he could do something which would 
make people slacken their pace to listenthen he could call out 
that he was in the basement of the house with the broken window. 
``Hallo!'' he shouted. ``Hallo! Hallo! Hallo! Hallo!'' 
But vehicles were passing in the streetand the passers-by were 
absorbed in their own business. If they heard a soundthey did 
not stop to inquire into it. 
``Hallo! Hallo! I am locked in!'' yelled Marcoat the topmost 
power of his lungs. ``Hallo! Hallo!'' 
After half an hour's shoutinghe began to think that he was 
wasting his strength. 
``They only think it is a boy shouting'' he said. ``Some one 
will notice in time. At nightwhen the streets are quietI 
might make a policeman hear. But my father does not know where 
I am. He will be trying to find me--so will Lazarus--so will The 
Rat. One of them might pass through this very streetas I did. 
What can I do!'' 
A new idea flashed light upon him. 
``I will begin to sing a Samavian songand I will sing it very 
loud. People nearly always stop a moment to listen to music and 
find out where it comes from. And if any of my own people came 
nearthey would stop at once--and now and then I will shout for 
help.'' 
Once when they had stopped to rest on Hampstead Heathhe had 
sung a valiant Samavian song for The Rat. The Rat had wanted to 
hear how he would sing when they went on their secret journey. 
He wanted him to sing for the Squad some dayto make the thing 
seem real. The Rat had been greatly excitedand had begged for 
the song often. It was a stirring martial thing with a sort of 
trumpet call of a chorus. Thousands of Samavians had sung it 
together on their way to the battle-fieldhundreds of years ago. 
He drew back a step or soandputting his hands on his hips
began to singthrowing his voice upward that it might pass 
through the broken window. He had a splendid and vibrant young 
voicethough he knew nothing of its fine quality. Just now he 
wanted only to make it loud. 
In the street outside very few people were passing. An irritable 
old gentleman who was taking an invalid walk quite jumped with 
annoyance when the song suddenly trumpeted forth. Boys had no 
right to yell in that manner. He hurried his step to get away 
from the sound. Two or three other people glanced over their 
shouldersbut had not time to loiter. A few others listened 
with pleasure as they drew near and passed on. 
``There's a boy with a fine voice'' said one. 
``What's he singing?'' said his companion. ``It sounds 
foreign.'' 
``Don't know'' was the reply as they went by. But at last a 
young man who was a music-teachergoing to give a lesson
hesitated and looked about him. The song was very loud and 
spirited just at this moment. The music-teacher could not 
understand where it came fromand paused to find out. The fact 
that he stopped attracted the attention of the next comerwho 
also paused. 
``Who's singing?'' he asked. ``Where is he singing?'' 
``I can't make out'' the music-teacher laughed. ``Sounds as if 
it came out of the ground.'' 
Andbecause it was queer that a song should seem to be coming 
out of the grounda costermonger stoppedand then a little boy
and then a workingwomanand then a lady. 
There was quite a little group when another person turned the 
corner of the street. He was a shabby boy on crutchesand he 
had a frantic look on his face. 
And Marco actually heardas he drew near to the groupthe 
tap-tap-tap of crutches. 
``It might be'' he thought. ``It might be!'' 
And he sang the trumpet-call of the chorus as if it were meant to 
reach the skiesand he sang it again and again. And at the end 
of it shouted``Hallo! Hallo! Hallo! Hallo! Hallo!'' 
The Rat swung himself into the group and looked as if he had gone 
crazy. He hurled himself against the people. 
``Where is he! Where is he!'' he criedand he poured out some 
breathless words; it was almost as if he sobbed them out. 
``We've been looking for him all night!'' he shouted. ``Where is 
he! Marco! Marco! No one else sings it but him. Marco! 
Marco!'' And out of the areaas it seemedcame a shout of 
answer. 
``Rat! Rat! I'm here in the cellar--locked in. I'm here!'' and 
a big piece of coal came hurtling through the broken window and 
fell crashing on the area flags. The Rat got down the steps into 
the area as if he had not been on crutches but on legsand 
banged on the doorshouting back: 
``Marco! Marco! Here I am! Who locked you in? How can I get 
the door open?'' 
Marco was close against the door inside. It was The Rat! It was 
The Rat! And he would be in the street again in a few minutes. 
``Call a policeman!'' he shouted through the keyhole. ``The 
people locked me in on purpose and took away the keys.'' 
Then the group of lookers-on began to get excited and press 
against the area railings and ask questions. They could not 
understand what had happened to cause the boy with the crutches 
to look as if he were crazy with terror and relief at the same 
time. 
And the little boy ran delightedly to fetch a policemanand 
found one in the next streetandwith some difficulty
persuaded him that it was his business to come and get a door 
open in an empty house where a boy who was a street singer had 
got locked up in a cellar. 
``IT IS A VERY BAD SIGN'' 
The policeman was not so much excited as out of temper. He did 
not know what Marco knew or what The Rat knew. Some common lad 
had got himself locked up in a houseand some one would have to 
go to the landlord and get a key from him. He had no intention 
of laying himself open to the law by breaking into a private 
house with his truncheonas The Rat expected him to do. 
``He got himself in through some of his larksand he'll have to 
wait till he's got out without smashing locks'' he growled
shaking the area door. ``How did you get in there?'' he shouted. 
It was not easy for Marco to explain through a keyhole that he 
had come in to help a lady who had met with an accident. The 
policeman thought this mere boy's talk. As to the rest of the 
storyMarco knew that it could not be related at all without 
saying things which could not be explained to any one but his 
father. He quickly made up his mind that he must let it be 
believed that he had been locked in by some queer accident. It 
must be supposed that the people had not rememberedin their 
hastethat he had not yet left the house. 
When the young clerk from the house agency came with the keyshe 
was much disturbed and bewildered after he got inside. 
``They've made a bolt of it'' he said. ``That happens now and 
thenbut there's something queer about this. What did they lock 
these doors in the basement forand the one on the stairs? What 
did they say to you?'' he asked Marcostaring at him 
suspiciously. 
``They said they were obliged to go suddenly'' Marco answered. 
``What were you doing in the basement?'' 
``The man took me down.'' 
``And left you there and bolted? He must have been in a hurry.'' 
``The lady said they had not a moment's time.'' 
``Her ankle must have got well in short order'' said the young 
man. 
``I knew nothing about them'' answered Marco. ``I had never 
seen them before.'' 
``The police were after them'' the young man said. ``That's 
what I should say. They paid three months' rent in advanceand 
they have only been here two. Some of these foreign spies 
lurking about London; that's what they were.'' 
The Rat had not waited until the keys arrived. He had swung 
himself at his swiftest pace back through the streets to No. 7 
Philibert Place. People turned and stared at his wild pale face 
as he almost shot past them. 
He had left himself barely breath enough to speak with when he 
reached the house and banged on the door with his crutch to save 
time. 
Both Loristan and Lazarus came to answer. 
The Rat leaned against the door gasping. 
``He's found! He's all right!'' he panted. ``Some one had 
locked him in a house and left him. They've sent for the keys. 
I'm going back. Brandon TerraceNo. 10.'' 
Loristan and Lazarus exchanged glances. Both of them were at the 
moment as pale as The Rat. 
``Help him into the house'' said Loristan to Lazarus. ``He must 
stay here and rest. We will go.'' The Rat knew it was an order. 
He did not like itbut he obeyed. 
``This is a bad signMaster'' said Lazarusas they went out 
together. 
``It is a very bad one'' answered Loristan. 
``God of the Rightdefend us!'' Lazarus groaned. 
``Amen!'' said Loristan. ``Amen!'' 
The group had become a small crowd by the time they reached 
Brandon Terrace. Marco had not found it easy to leave the place 
because he was being questioned. Neither the policeman nor the 
agent's clerk seemed willing to relinquish the idea that he could 
give them some information about the absconding pair. 
The entrance of Loristan produced its usual effect. The agent's 
clerk lifted his hatand the policeman stood straight and made 
salute. Neither of them realized that the tall man's clothes 
were worn and threadbare. They felt only that a personage was 
before themand that it was not possible to question his air of 
absolute and serene authority. He laid his hand on Marco's 
shoulder and held it there as he spoke. When Marco looked up at 
him and felt the closeness of his touchit seemed as if it were 
an embrace-- as if he had caught him to his breast. 
``My boy knew nothing of these people'' he said. ``That I can 
guarantee. He had seen neither of them before. His entering the 
house was the result of no boyish trick. He has been shut up in 
this place for nearly twenty-four hours and has had no food. I 
must take him home. This is my address.'' He handed the young 
man a card. 
Then they went home togetherand all the way to Philibert Place 
Loristan's firm hand held closely to his boy's shoulder as if he 
could not endure to let him go. But on the way they said very 
little. 
``Father'' Marco saidrather hoarselywhen they first got away 
from the house in the terrace``I can't talk well in the street. 
For one thingI am so glad to be with you again. It seemed as 
if--it might turn out badly.'' 
``Beloved one'' Loristan said the words in their own Samavian
``until you are fed and at restyou shall not talk at all.'' 
Afterwardwhen he was himself again and was allowed to tell his 
strange storyMarco found that both his father and Lazarus had 
at once had suspicions when he had not returned. They knew no 
ordinary event could have kept him. They were sure that he must 
have been detained against his willand they were also sure 
thatif he had been so detainedit could only have been for 
reasons they could guess at. 
``This was the card that she gave me'' Marco saidand he handed 
it to Loristan. ``She said you would remember the name.'' 
Loristan looked at the lettering with an ironic half-smile. 
``I never heard it before'' he replied. ``She would not send me 
a name I knew. Probably I have never seen either of them. But I 
know the work they do. They are spies of the Maranovitchand 
suspect that I know something of the Lost Prince. They believed 
they could terrify you into saying things which would be a clue. 
Men and women of their class will use desperate means to gain 
their end.'' 
``Might they--have left me as they threatened?'' Marco asked him. 
``They would scarcely have daredI think. Too great a hue and 
cry would have been raised by the discovery of such a crime. Too 
many detectives would have been set at work to track them.'' 
But the look in his father's eyes as he spokeand the pressure 
of the hand he stretched out to touch himmade Marco's heart 
thrill. He had won a new love and trust from his father. When 
they sat together and talked that nightthey were closer to each 
other's souls than they had ever been before. 
They sat in the firelightMarco upon the worn hearth-rugand 
they talked about Samavia--about the war and its heart-rending 
strugglesand about how they might end. 
``Do you think that some time we might be exiles no longer?'' the 
boy said wistfully. ``Do you think we might go there together 
--and see it--you and IFather?'' 
There was a silence for a while. Loristan looked into the 
sinking bed of red coal. 
``For years--for years I have made for my soul that image'' he 
said slowly. ``When I think of my friend on the side of the 
Himalayan MountainsI say`The Thought which Thought the World 
may give us that also!' '' 
XVIII 
``CITIES AND FACES'' 
The hours of Marco's unexplained absence had been terrible to 
Loristan and to Lazarus. They had reason for fears which it was 
not possible for them to express. As the night drew onthe 
fears took stronger form. They forgot the existence of The Rat
who sat biting his nails in the bedroomafraid to go out lest he 
might lose the chance of being given some errand to do but also 
afraid to show himself lest he should seem in the way. 
``I'll stay upstairs'' he had said to Lazarus. ``If you just 
whistleI'll come.'' 
The anguish he passed through as the day went by and Lazarus went 
out and came in and he himself received no orderscould not 
have been expressed in any ordinary words. He writhed in his 
chairhe bit his nails to the quickhe wrought himself into a 
frenzy of misery and terror by recalling one by one all the 
crimes his knowledge of London police-courts supplied him with. 
He was doing nothingyet he dare not leave his post. It was his 
post after allthough they had not given it to him. He must do 
something. 
In the middle of the night Loristan opened the door of the back 
sitting-roombecause he knew he must at least go upstairs and 
throw himself upon his bed even if he could not sleep. 
He started back as the door opened. The Rat was sitting huddled 
on the floor near it with his back against the wall. He had a 
piece of paper in his hand and his twisted face was a weird thing 
to see. 
``Why are you here?'' Loristan asked. 
``I've been here three hourssir. I knew you'd have to come out 
sometime and I thought you'd let me speak to you. Will you-will 
you?'' 
``Come into the room'' said Loristan. ``I will listen to 
anything you want to say. What have you been drawing on that 
paper?'' as The Rat got up in the wonderful way he had taught 
himself. The paper was covered with lines which showed it to be 
another of his plans. 
``Please look at it'' he begged. ``I daren't go out lest you 
might want to send me somewhere. I daren't sit doing nothing. I 
began remembering and thinking things out. I put down all the 
streets and squares he MIGHT have walked through on his way home. 
I've not missed one. If you'll let me start out and walk through 
every one of them and talk to the policemen on the beat and look 
at the houses--and think out things and work at them--I'll not 
miss an inch--I'll not miss a brick or a flagstone--I'll--'' His 
voice had a hard sound but it shookand he himself shook. 
Loristan touched his arm gently. 
``You are a good comrade'' he said. ``It is well for us that 
you are here. You have thought of a good thing.'' 
``May I go now?'' said The Rat. 
``This momentif you are ready'' was the answer. The Rat swung 
himself to the door. 
Loristan said to him a thing which was like the sudden lighting 
of a great light in the very center of his being. 
``You are one of us. Now that I know you are doing this I may 
even sleep. You are one of us.'' And it was because he was 
following this plan that The Rat had turned into Brandon Terrace 
and heard the Samavian song ringing out from the locked basement 
of Number 10. 
``Yeshe is one of us'' Loristan saidwhen he told this part 
of the story to Marco as they sat by the fire. ``I had not been 
sure before. I wanted to be very sure. Last night I saw into 
the depths of him and KNEW. He may be trusted.'' 
From that day The Rat held a new place. Lazarus himself
strangely enoughdid not resent his holding it. The boy was 
allowed to be near Loristan as he had never dared to hope to be 
near. It was not merely that he was allowed to serve him in many 
waysbut he was taken into the intimacy which had before 
enclosed only the three. Loristan talked to him as he talked to 
Marcodrawing him within the circle which held so much that was 
comprehended without speech. The Rat knew that he was being 
trained and observed and he realized it with exaltation. His 
idol had said that he was ``one of them'' and he was watching and 
putting him to tests so that he might find out how much he was 
one of them. And he was doing it for some grave reason of his 
own. This thought possessed The Rat's whole mind. Perhaps he 
was wondering if he should find out that he was to be trustedas 
a rock is to be trusted. That he should even think that perhaps 
he might find that he was like a rockwas inspiration enough. 
``Sir'' he said one night when they were alone togetherbecause 
The Rat had been copying a road-map. His voice was very low-``
do you think that--sometime--you could trust me as you trust 
Marco? Could it ever be like that--ever?'' 
``The time has come'' and Loristan's voice was almost as low as 
his ownthough strong and deep feeling underlay its quiet-
``the time has come when I can trust you with Marco--to be his 
companion--to care for himto stand by his side at any moment. 
And Marco is--Marco is my son.'' That was enough to uplift The 
Rat to the skies. But there was more to follow. 
``It may not be long before it may be his part to do work in 
which he will need a comrade who can be trusted--as a rock can be 
trusted.'' 
He had said the very words The Rat's own mind had given to him. 
``A Rock! A Rock!'' the boy broke out. ``Let me show yousir. 
Send me with him for a servant. The crutches are nothing. 
You've seen that they're as good as legshaven't you? I've 
trained myself.'' 
``I knowI knowdear lad.'' Marco had told him all of it. He 
gave him a gracious smile which seemed as if it held a sort of 
fine secret. ``You shall go as his aide-de-camp. It shall be 
part of the game.'' 
He had always encouraged ``the game'' and during the last weeks 
had even found time to help them in their plannings for the 
mysterious journey of the Secret Two. He had been so interested 
that once or twice he had called on Lazarus as an old soldier and 
Samavian to give his opinions of certain routes--and of the 
customs and habits of people in towns and villages by the way. 
Here they would find simple pastoral folk who dancedsang after 
their day's workand who would tell all they knew; here they 
would find those who served or feared the Maranovitch and who 
would not talk at all. In one place they would meet with 
hospitalityin another with unfriendly suspicion of all 
strangers. Through talk and stories The Rat began to know the 
country almost as Marco knew it. That was part of the game 
too--because it was always ``the game'' they called it. Another 
part was The Rat's training of his memoryand bringing home his 
proofs of advance at night when he returned from his walk and 
could describeor reciteor roughly sketch all he had seen in 
his passage from one place to another. Marco's part was to 
recall and sketch faces. Loristan one night gave him a number of 
photographs of people to commit to memory. Under each face was 
written the name of a place. 
``Learn these faces'' he said``until you would know each one 
of them at once wheresoever you met it. Fix them upon your mind
so that it will be impossible for you to forget them. You must 
be able to sketch any one of them and recall the city or town or 
neighborhood connected with it.'' 
Even this was still called ``the game'' but Marco began to know 
in his secret heart that it was so much morethat his hand 
sometimes trembled with excitement as he made his sketches over 
and over again. To make each one many times was the best way to 
imbed it in his memory. The Rat knewtoothough he had no 
reason for knowingbut mere instinct. He used to lie awake in 
the night and think it over and remember what Loristan had said 
of the time coming when Marco might need a comrade in his work. 
What was his work to be? It was to be something like ``the 
game.'' And they were being prepared for it. And though Marco 
often lay awake on his bed when The Rat lay awake on his sofa
neither boy spoke to the other of the thing his mind dwelt on. 
And Marco worked as he had never worked before. The game was 
very exciting when he could prove his prowess. The four gathered 
together at night in the back sitting-room. Lazarus was obliged 
to be with them because a second judge was needed. Loristan 
would mention the name of a placeperhaps a street in Paris or a 
hotel in Viennaand Marco would at once make a rapid sketch of 
the face under whose photograph the name of the locality had been 
written. It was not long before he could begin his sketch 
without more than a moment's hesitation. And yet even when this 
had become the casethey still played the game night after 
night. There was a great hotel near the Place de la Concorde in 
Parisof which Marco felt he should never hear the name during 
all his life without there starting up before his mental vision a 
tall woman with fierce black eyes and a delicate high-bridged 
nose across which the strong eyebrows almost met. In Vienna 
there was a palace which would always bring back at once a pale 
cold-faced man with a heavy blonde lock which fell over his 
forehead. A certain street in Munich meant a stout genial old 
aristocrat with a sly smile; a village in Bavariaa peasant with 
a vacant and simple countenance. A curled and smoothed man who 
looked like a hair-dresser brought up a place in an Austrian 
mountain town. He knew them all as he knew his own face and No. 
7 Philibert Place. 
But still night after night the game was played. 
Then came a night whenout of a deep sleephe was awakened by 
Lazarus touching him. He had so long been secretly ready to 
answer any call that he sat up straight in bed at the first 
touch. 
``Dress quickly and come down stairs'' Lazarus said. ``The 
Prince is here and wishes to speak with you.'' 
Marco made no answer but got out of bed and began to slip on his 
clothes. 
Lazarus touched The Rat. 
The Rat was as ready as Marco and sat upright as he had done. 
``Come down with the young Master'' he commanded. ``It is 
necessary that you should be seen and spoken to.'' And having 
given the order he went away. 
No one heard the shoeless feet of the two boys as they stole down 
the stairs. 
An elderly man in ordinary clothesbut with an unmistakable 
facewas sitting quietly talking to Loristan who with a gesture 
called both forward. 
``The Prince has been much interested in what I have told him of 
your game'' he said in his lowest voice. ``He wishes to see you 
make your sketchesMarco.'' 
Marco looked very straight into the Prince's eyes which were 
fixed intently on him as he made his bow. 
``His Highness does me honor'' he saidas his father might have 
said it. He went to the table at once and took from a drawer his 
pencils and pieces of cardboard. 
``I should know he was your son and a Samavian'' the Prince 
remarked. 
Then his keen and deep-set eyes turned themselves on the boy with 
the crutches. 
``This'' said Loristan``is the one who calls himself The Rat. 
He is one of us.'' 
The Rat saluted. 
``Please tell himsir'' he whispered``that the crutches don't 
matter.'' 
``He has trained himself to an extraordinary activity'' Loristan 
said. ``He can do anything.'' 
The keen eyes were still taking The Rat in. 
``They are an advantage'' said the Prince at last. 
Lazarus had nailed together a lightrough easel which Marco used 
in making his sketches when the game was played. Lazarus was 
standing in state at the doorand he came forwardbrought the 
easel from its cornerand arranged the necessary drawing 
materials upon it. 
Marco stood near it and waited the pleasure of his father and his 
visitor. They were speaking together in low tones and he waited 
several minutes. What The Rat noticed was what he had noticed 
before--that the big boy could stand still in perfect ease and 
silence. It was not necessary for him to say things or to ask 
questions-- to look at people as if he felt restless if they did 
not speak to or notice him. He did not seem to require notice
and The Rat felt vaguely thatyoung as he wasthis very freedom 
from any anxiety to be looked at or addressed made him somehow 
look like a great gentleman. 
Loristan and the Prince advanced to where he stood. 
``L'Hotel de Marigny'' Loristan said. 
Marco began to sketch rapidly. He began the portrait of the 
handsome woman with the delicate high-bridged nose and the black 
brows which almost met. As he did itthe Prince drew nearer and 
watched the work over his shoulder. It did not take very long 
andwhen it was finishedthe inspector turnedand after giving 
Loristan a long and strange looknodded twice. 
``It is a remarkable thing'' he said. ``In that rough sketch 
she is not to be mistaken.'' 
Loristan bent his head. 
Then he mentioned the name of another street in another place 
--and Marco sketched again. This time it was the peasant with 
the simple face. The Prince bowed again. Then Loristan gave 
another nameand after that another and another; and Marco did 
his work until it was at an endand Lazarus stood near with a 
handful of sketches which he had silently taken charge of as each 
was laid aside. 
``You would know these faces wheresoever you saw them?'' said the 
Prince. ``If you passed one in Bond Street or in the Marylebone 
Roadyou would recognize it at once?'' 
``As I know yourssir'' Marco answered. 
Then followed a number of questions. Loristan asked them as he 
had often asked them before. They were questions as to the 
height and build of the originals of the picturesof the color 
of their hair and eyesand the order of their complexions. 
Marco answered them all. He knew all but the names of these 
peopleand it was plainly not necessary that he should know 
themas his father had never uttered them. 
After this questioning was at an end the Prince pointed to The 
Rat who had leaned on his crutches against the wallhis eyes 
fiercely eager like a ferret's. 
``And he?'' the Prince said. ``What can he do?'' 
``Let me try'' said The Rat. ``Marco knows.'' 
Marco looked at his father. 
``May I help him to show you?'' he asked. 
``Yes'' Loristan answeredand thenas he turned to the Prince
he said again in his low voice: ``HE IS ONE OF US.'' 
Then Marco began a new form of the game. He held up one of the 
pictured faces before The Ratand The Rat named at once the city 
and place connected with ithe detailed the color of eyes and 
hairthe heightthe buildall the personal details as Marco 
himself had detailed them. To these he added descriptions of the 
citiesand points concerning the police systemthe palacesthe 
people. His face twisted itselfhis eyes burnedhis voice 
shookbut he was amazing in his readiness of reply and his 
exactness of memory. 
``I can't draw'' he said at the end. ``But I can remember. I 
didn't want any one to be bothered with thinking I was trying to 
learn it. So only Marco knew.'' 
This he said to Loristan with appeal in his voice. 
``It was he who invented `the game' '' said Loristan. ``I 
showed you his strange maps and plans.'' 
``It is a good game'' the Prince answered in the manner of a man 
extraordinarily interested and impressed. ``They know it well. 
They can be trusted.'' 
``No such thing has ever been done before'' Loristan said. ``It 
is as new as it is daring and simple.'' 
``Therein lies its safety'' the Prince answered. 
``Perhaps only boyhood'' said Loristan``could have dared to 
imagine it.'' 
``The Prince thanks you'' he said after a few more words spoken 
aside to his visitor. ``We both thank you. You may go back to 
your beds.'' 
And the boys went. 
``THAT IS ONE!'' 
A week had not passed before Marco brought to The Rat in their 
bedroom an envelope containing a number of slips of paper on each 
of which was written something. 
``This is another part of the game'' he said gravely. ``Let us 
sit down together by the table and study it.'' 
They sat down and examined what was written on the slips. At the 
head of each was the name of one of the places with which Marco 
had connected a face he had sketched. Below were clear and 
concise directions as to how it was to be reached and the words 
to be said when each individual was encountered. 
``This person is to be found at his stall in the market'' was 
written of the vacant-faced peasant. ``You will first attract 
his attention by asking the price of something. When he is 
looking at youtouch your left thumb lightly with the forefinger 
of your right hand. Then utter in a low distinct tone the words 
`The Lamp is lighted.' That is all you are to do.'' 
Sometimes the directions were not quite so simplebut they were 
all instructions of the same order. The originals of the 
sketches were to be sought out--always with precaution which 
should conceal that they were being sought at alland always in 
such a manner as would cause an encounter to appear to be mere 
chance. Then certain words were to be utteredbut always 
without attracting the attention of any bystander or passer-by. 
The boys worked at their task through the entire day. They 
concentrated all their powers upon it. They wrote and re-wrote 
--they repeated to each other what they committed to memory as if 
it were a lesson. Marco worked with the greater ease and more 
rapidlybecause exercise of this order had been his practice and 
entertainment from his babyhood. The Rathoweveralmost kept 
pace with himas he had been born with a phenomenal memory and 
his eagerness and desire were a fury. 
But throughout the entire day neither of them once referred to 
what they were doing as anything but ``the game.'' 
At nightit is trueeach found himself lying awake and 
thinking. It was The Rat who broke the silence from his sofa. 
``It is what the messengers of the Secret Party would be ordered 
to do when they were sent out to give the Sign for the Rising'' 
he said. ``I made that up the first day I invented the party
didn't I?'' 
``Yes'' answered Marco. 
After a third day's concentration they knew by heart everything 
given to them to learn. That night Loristan put them through an 
examination. 
``Can you write these things?'' he askedafter each had repeated 
them and emerged safely from all cross-questioning. 
Each boy wrote them correctly from memory. 
``Write yours in French--in German--in Russian--in Samavian'' 
Loristan said to Marco. 
``All you have told me to do and to learn is part of myself
Father'' Marco said in the end. ``It is part of meas if it 
were my hand or my eyes--or my heart.'' 
``I believe that is true'' answered Loristan. 
He was pale that night and there was a shadow on his face. His 
eyes held a great longing as they rested on Marco. It was a 
yearning which had a sort of dread in it. 
Lazarus also did not seem quite himself. He was red instead of 
paleand his movements were uncertain and restless. He cleared 
his throat nervously at intervals and more than once left his 
chair as if to look for something. 
It was almost midnight when Loristanstanding near Marcoput 
his arm round his shoulders. 
``The Game''--he beganand then was silent a few moments while 
Marco felt his arm tighten its hold. Both Marco and The Rat felt 
a hard quick beat in their breastsandbecause of this and 
because the pause seemed longMarco spoke. 
``The Game--yesFather?'' he said. 
``The Game is about to give you work to do--both of you'' 
Loristan answered. 
Lazarus cleared his throat and walked to the easel in the corner 
of the room. But he only changed the position of a piece of 
drawing- paper on it and then came back. 
``In two days you are to go to Paris--as you'' to The Rat
``planned in the game.'' 
``As I planned?'' The Rat barely breathed the words. 
``Yes'' answered Loristan. ``The instructions you have learned 
you will carry out. There is no more to be done than to manage 
to approach certain persons closely enough to be able to utter 
certain words to them.'' 
``Only two young strollers whom no man could suspect'' put in 
Lazarus in an astonishingly rough and shaky voice. ``They could 
pass near the Emperor himself without danger. The young 
Master--'' his voice became so hoarse that he was obligated to 
clear it loudly--``the young Master must carry himself less 
finely. It would be well to shuffle a little and slouch as if he 
were of the common people.'' 
``Yes'' said The Rat hastily. ``He must do that. I can teach 
him. He holds his head and his shoulders like a gentleman. He 
must look like a street lad.'' 
``I will look like one'' said Marcowith determination. 
``I will trust you to remind him'' Loristan said to The Ratand 
he said it with gravity. ``That will be your charge.'' 
As he lay upon his pillow that nightit seemed to Marco as if a 
load had lifted itself from his heart. It was the load of 
uncertainty and longing. He had so long borne the pain of 
feeling that he was too young to be allowed to serve in any way. 
His dreams had never been wild ones--they had in fact always been 
boyish and modesthowsoever romantic. But now no dream which 
could have passed through his brain would have seemed so 
wonderful as this--that the hour had come--the hour had come--and 
that heMarcowas to be its messenger. He was to do no 
dramatic deed and be announced by no flourish of heralds. No one 
would know what he did. What he achieved could only be attained 
if he remained obscure and unknown and seemed to every one only a 
common ordinary boy who knew nothing whatever of important 
things. But his father had given to him a gift so splendid that 
he trembled with awe and joy as he thought of it. The Game had 
become real. He and The Rat were to carry with them The Sign
and it would be like carrying a tiny lamp to set aflame lights 
which would blaze from one mountain-top to another until half the 
world seemed on fire. 
As he had awakened out of his sleep when Lazarus touched himso 
he awakened in the middle of the night again. But he was not 
aroused by a touch. When he opened his eyes he knew it was a 
look which had penetrated his sleep--a look in the eyes of his 
father who was standing by his side. In the road outside there 
was the utter silence he had noticed the night of the Prince's 
first visit--the only light was that of the lamp in the street
but he could see Loristan's face clearly enough to know that the 
mere intensity of his gaze had awakened him. The Rat was 
sleeping profoundly. Loristan spoke in Samavian and under his 
breath. 
``Beloved one'' he said. ``You are very young. Because I am 
your father--just at this hour I can feel nothing else. I have 
trained you for this through all the years of your life. I am 
proud of your young maturity and strength but--Beloved--you are a 
child! Can I do this thing!'' 
For the momenthis face and his voice were scarcely like his 
own. 
He kneeled by the bedsideandas he did itMarco half sitting 
up caught his hand and held it hard against his breast. 
``FatherI know!'' he cried under his breath also. ``It is 
true. I am a child but am I not a man also? You yourself said 
it. I always knew that you were teaching me to be one--for some 
reason. It was my secret that I knew it. I learned well because 
I never forgot it. And I learned. Did I not?'' 
He was so eager that he looked more like a boy than ever. But 
his young strength and courage were splendid to see. Loristan 
knew him through and through and read every boyish thought of 
his. 
``Yes'' he answered slowly. ``You did your part--and now if I 
--drew back--you would feel that I HAD FAILED YOU-FAILED YOU.'' 
``You!'' Marco breathed it proudly. ``You COULD not fail even 
the weakest thing in the world.'' 
There was a moment's silence in which the two pairs of eyes dwelt 
on each other with the deepest meaningand then Loristan rose to 
his feet. 
``The end will be all that our hearts most wish'' he said. 
``To- morrow you may begin the new part of `the Game.' You may 
go to Paris.'' 
When the train which was to meet the boat that crossed from Dover 
to Calais steamed out of the noisy Charing Cross Stationit 
carried in a third-class carriage two shabby boys. One of them 
would have been a handsome lad if he had not carried himself 
slouchingly and walked with a street lad's careless shuffling 
gait. The other was a cripple who moved slowlyand apparently 
with difficultyon crutches. There was nothing remarkable or 
picturesque enough about them to attract attention. They sat in 
the corner of the carriage and neither talked much nor seemed to 
be particularly interested in the journey or each other. When 
they went on board the steamerthey were soon lost among the 
commoner passengers and in fact found for themselves a secluded 
place which was not advantageous enough to be wanted by any one 
else. 
``What can such a poor-looking pair of lads be going to Paris 
for?'' some one asked his companion. 
``Not for pleasurecertainly; perhaps to get work'' was the 
casual answer. 
In the evening they reached Parisand Marco led the way to a 
small cafe in a side-street where they got some cheap food. In 
the same side-street they found a bed they could share for the 
night in a tiny room over a baker's shop. 
The Rat was too much excited to be ready to go to bed early. He 
begged Marco to guide him about the brilliant streets. They went 
slowly along the broad Avenue des Champs Elysees under the lights 
glittering among the horse-chestnut trees. The Rat's sharp eyes 
took it all in--the light of the cafes among the embowering 
treesthe many carriages rolling bythe people who loitered and 
laughed or sat at little tables drinking wine and listening to 
musicthe broad stream of life which flowed on to the Arc de 
Triomphe and back again. 
``It's brighter and clearer than London'' he said to Marco. 
``The people look as if they were having more fun than they do in 
England.'' 
The Place de la Concorde spreading its stately spaces--a world of 
illuminationmovementand majestic beauty--held him as though 
by a fascination. He wanted to stand and stare at itfirst from 
one point of view and then from another. It was bigger and more 
wonderful than he had been able to picture it when Marco had 
described it to him and told him of the part it had played in the 
days of the French Revolution when the guillotine had stood in it 
and the tumbrils had emptied themselves at the foot of its steps. 
He stood near the Obelisk a long time without speaking. 
``I can see it all happening'' he said at lastand he pulled 
Marco away. 
Before they returned homethey found their way to a large house 
which stood in a courtyard. In the iron work of the handsome 
gates which shut it in was wrought a gilded coronet. The gates 
were closed and the house was not brightly lighted. 
They walked past it and round it without speakingbutwhen they 
neared the entrance for the second timeThe Rat said in a low 
tone: 
``She is five feet sevenhas black haira nose with a high 
bridgeher eyebrows are black and almost meet across itshe has 
a pale olive skin and holds her head proudly.'' 
``That is the one'' Marco answered. 
They were a week in Paris and each day passed this big house. 
There were certain hours when great ladies were more likely to go 
out and come in than they were at others. Marco knew thisand 
they managed to be within sight of the house or to pass it at 
these hours. For two days they saw no sign of the person they 
wished to seebut one morning the gates were thrown open and 
they saw flowers and palms being taken in. 
``She has been away and is coming back'' said Marco. The next 
day they passed three times--once at the hour when fashionable 
women drive out to do their shoppingonce at the time when 
afternoon visiting is most likely to beginand once when the 
streets were brilliant with lights and the carriages had begun to 
roll by to dinner- parties and theaters. 
Thenas they stood at a little distance from the iron gatesa 
carriage drove through them and stopped before the big open door 
which was thrown open by two tall footmen in splendid livery. 
``She is coming out'' said The Rat. 
They would be able to see her plainly when she camebecause the 
lights over the entrance were so bright. 
Marco slipped from under his coat sleeve a carefully made sketch. 
He looked at it and The Rat looked at it. 
A footman stood erect on each side of the open door. The footman 
who sat with the coachman had got down and was waiting by the 
carriage. Marco and The Rat glanced again with furtive haste at 
the sketch. A handsome woman appeared upon the threshold. She 
paused and gave some order to the footman who stood on the right. 
Then she came out in the full light and got into the carriage 
which drove out of the courtyard and quite near the place where 
the two boys waited. 
When it was goneMarco drew a long breath as he tore the sketch 
into very small pieces indeed. He did not throw them away but 
put them into his pocket. 
The Rat drew a long breath also. 
``Yes'' he said positively. 
``Yes'' said Marco. 
When they were safely shut up in their room over the baker's 
shopthey discussed the chances of their being able to pass her 
in such a way as would seem accidental. Two common boys could 
not enter the courtyard. There was a back entrance for 
tradespeople and messengers. When she droveshe would always 
enter her carriage from the same place. Unless she sometimes 
walkedthey could not approach her. What should be done? The 
thing was difficult. After they had talked some timeThe Rat 
sat and gnawed his nails. 
``To-morrow afternoon'' he broke out at last``we'll watch and 
see if her carriage drives in for her--thenwhen she comes to 
the doorI'll go in and begin to beg. The servant will think 
I'm a foreigner and don't know what I'm doing. You can come 
after me to tell me to come awaybecause you know better than I 
do that I shall be ordered out. She may be a good-natured woman 
and listen to us --and you might get near her.'' 
``We might try it'' Marco answered. ``It might work. We will 
try it.'' 
The Rat never failed to treat him as his leader. He had begged 
Loristan to let him come with Marco as his servantand his 
servant he had been more than willing to be. When Loristan had 
said he should be his aide-de-camphe had felt his trust lifted 
to a military dignity which uplifted him with it. As his 
aide-de-camp he must serve himwatch himobey his lightest 
wishmake everything easy for him. SometimesMarco was 
troubled by the way in which he insisted on serving himthis 
queeronce dictatorial and cantankerous lad who had begun by 
throwing stones at him. 
``You must not wait on me'' he said to him. ``I must wait upon 
myself.'' 
The Rat rather flushed. 
``He told me that he would let me come with you as your aide-de 
camp'' he said. ``It--it's part of the game. It makes things 
easier if we keep up the game.'' 
It would have attracted attention if they had spent too much time 
in the vicinity of the big house. So it happened that the next 
afternoon the great lady evidently drove out at an hour when they 
were not watching for her. They were on their way to try if they 
could carry out their planwhenas they walked together along 
the Rue RoyaleThe Rat suddenly touched Marco's elbow. 
``The carriage stands before the shop with lace in the windows'' 
he whispered hurriedly. 
Marco saw and recognized it at once. The owner had evidently 
gone into the shop to buy something. This was a better chance 
than they had hoped forandwhen they approached the carriage 
itselfthey saw that there was another point in their favor. 
Inside were no less than three beautiful little Pekingese 
spaniels that looked exactly alike. They were all trying to look 
out of the window and were pushing against each other. They were 
so perfect and so pretty that few people passed by without 
looking at them. What better excuse could two boys have for 
lingering about a place? 
They stopped andstanding a little distance awaybegan to look 
at and discuss them and laugh at their excited little antics. 
Through the shop-window Marco caught a glimpse of the great lady. 
``She does not look much interested. She won't stay long'' he 
whisperedand added aloud``that little one is the master. See 
how he pushes the others aside! He is stronger than the other 
twothough he is so small.'' 
``He can snaptoo'' said The Rat. 
``She is coming now'' warned Marcoand then laughed aloud as if 
at the Pekingesewhichcatching sight of their mistress at the 
shop-doorbegan to leap and yelp for joy. 
Their mistress herself smiledand was smiling as Marco drew near 
her. 
``May we look at themMadame?'' he said in Frenchandas she 
made an amiable gesture of acquiescence and moved toward the 
carriage with himhe spoke a few wordsvery low but very 
distinctlyin Russian. 
``The Lamp is lighted'' he said. 
The Rat was looking at her keenlybut he did not see her face 
change at all. What he noticed most throughout their journey was 
that each person to whom they gave the Sign had complete control 
over his or her countenanceif there were bystandersand never 
betrayed by any change of expression that the words meant 
anything unusual. 
The great lady merely went on smilingand spoke only of the 
dogsallowing Marco and himself to look at them through the 
window of the carriage as the footman opened the door for her to 
enter. 
``They are beautiful little creatures'' Marco saidlifting his 
capandas the footman turned awayhe uttered his few Russian 
words once more and moved off without even glancing at the lady 
again. 
``That is ONE!'' he said to The Rat that night before they went 
to sleepand with a match he burned the scraps of the sketch he 
had torn and put into his pocket. 
MARCO GOES TO THE OPERA 
Their next journey was to Munichbut the night before they left 
Paris an unexpected thing happened. 
To reach the narrow staircase which led to their bedroom it was 
necessary to pass through the baker's shop itself. 
The baker's wife was a friendly woman who liked the two boy 
lodgers who were so quiet and gave no trouble. More than once 
she had given them a hot roll or so or a freshly baked little 
tartlet with fruit in the center. When Marco came in this 
eveningshe greeted him with a nod and handed him a small parcel 
as he passed through. 
``This was left for you this afternoon'' she said. ``I see you 
are making purchases for your journey. My man and I are very 
sorry you are going.'' 
``Thank youMadame. We also are sorry'' Marco answeredtaking 
the parcel. ``They are not large purchasesyou see.'' 
But neither he nor The Rat had bought anything at allthough the 
ordinary-looking little package was plainly addressed to him and 
bore the name of one of the big cheap shops. It felt as if it 
contained something soft. 
When he reached their bedroomThe Rat was gazing out of the 
window watching every living thing which passed in the street 
below. He who had never seen anything but London was absorbed by 
the spell of Paris and was learning it by heart. 
``Something has been sent to us. Look at this'' said Marco. 
The Rat was at his side at once. ``What is it? Where did it 
come from?'' 
They opened the package and at first sight saw only several pairs 
of quite common woolen socks. As Marco took up the sock in the 
middle of the parcelhe felt that there was something inside 
it-- something laid flat and carefully. He put his hand in and 
drew out a number of five-franc notes--not new onesbecause new 
ones would have betrayed themselves by crackling. These were old 
enough to be soft. But there were enough of them to amount to a 
substantial sum. 
``It is in small notes because poor boys would have only small 
ones. No one will be surprised when we change these'' The Rat 
said. 
Each of them believed the package had been sent by the great 
ladybut it had been done so carefully that not the slightest 
clue was furnished. 
To The Ratpart of the deep excitement of ``the Game'' was the 
working out of the plans and methods of each person concerned. 
He could not have slept without working out some scheme which 
might have been used in this case. It thrilled him to 
contemplate the difficulties the great lady might have found 
herself obliged to overcome. 
``Perhaps'' he saidafter thinking it over for some time``she 
went to a big common shop dressed as if she were an ordinary 
woman and bought the socks and pretended she was going to carry 
them home herself. She would do that so that she could take them 
into some corner and slip the money in. Thenas she wanted to 
have them sent from the shopperhaps she bought some other 
things and asked the people to deliver the packages to different 
places. The socks were sent to us and the other things to some 
one else. She would go to a shop where no one knew her and no 
one would expect to see her and she would wear clothes which 
looked neither rich nor too poor.'' 
He created the whole episode with all its details and explained 
them to Marco. It fascinated him for the entire evening and he 
felt relieved after it and slept well. 
Even before they had left Londoncertain newspapers had swept 
out of existence the story of the descendant of the Lost Prince. 
This had been done by derision and light handling--by treating it 
as a romantic legend. 
At firstThe Rat had resented this bitterlybut one day at a 
mealwhen he had been producing arguments to prove that the 
story must be a true oneLoristan somehow checked him by his own 
silence. 
``If there is such a man'' he said after a pause``it is well 
for him that his existence should not be believed in--for some 
time at least.'' 
The Rat came to a dead stop. He felt hot for a moment and then 
felt cold. He saw a new idea all at once. He had been making a 
mistake in tactics. 
No more was said butwhen they were alone afterwardshe poured 
himself forth to Marco. 
``I was a fool!'' he cried out. ``Why couldn't I see it for 
myself! Shall I tell you what I believe has been done? There is 
some one who has influence in England and who is a friend to 
Samavia. They've got the newspapers to make fun of the story so 
that it won't be believed. If it was believedboth the 
Iarovitch and the Maranovitch would be on the lookoutand the 
Secret Party would lose their chances. What a fool I was not to 
think of it! There's some one watching and working here who is a 
friend to Samavia.'' 
``But there is some one in Samavia who has begun to suspect that 
it might be true'' Marco answered. ``If there were notI 
should not have been shut in the cellar. Some one thought my 
father knew something. The spies had orders to find out what it 
was.'' 
``Yes. Yes. That's truetoo!'' The Rat answered anxiously. 
``We shall have to be very careful.'' 
In the lining of the sleeve of Marco's coat there was a slit into 
which he could slip any small thing he wished to conceal and also 
wished to be able to reach without trouble. In this he had 
carried the sketch of the lady which he had torn up in Paris. 
When they walked in the streets of Munichthe morning after 
their arrivalhe carried still another sketch. It was the one 
picturing the genial- looking old aristocrat with the sly smile. 
One of the things they had learned about this one was that his 
chief characteristic was his passion for music. He was a patron 
of musicians and he spent much time in Munich because he loved 
its musical atmosphere and the earnestness of its opera-goers. 
``The military band plays in the Feldherrn-halle at midday. When 
something very good is being playedsometimes people stop their 
carriages so that they can listen. We will go there'' said 
Marco. 
``It's a chance'' said The Rat. ``We mustn't lose anything like 
a chance.'' 
The day was brilliant and sunnythe people passing through the 
streets looked comfortable and homelythe mixture of old streets 
and modern onesof ancient corners and shops and houses of the 
day was picturesque and cheerful. The Rat swinging through the 
crowd on his crutches was full of interest and exhilaration. He 
had begun to growand the change in his face and expression 
which had begun in London had become more noticeable. He had 
been given his ``place'' and a work to do which entitled him to 
hold it. 
No one could have suspected them of carrying a strange and vital 
secret with them as they strolled along together. They seemed 
only two ordinary boys who looked in at shop windows and talked 
over their contentsand who loitered with upturned faces in the 
Marien- Platz before the ornate Gothic Rathaus to hear the eleven 
o'clock chimes play and see the painted figures of the King and 
Queen watch from their balcony the passing before them of the 
automatic tournament procession with its trumpeters and tilting 
knights. When the show was over and the automatic cock broke 
forth into his lusty farewell crowthey laughed just as any 
other boys would have laughed. Sometimes it would have been easy 
for The Rat to forget that there was anything graver in the world 
than the new places and new wonders he was seeingas if he were 
a wandering minstrel in a story. 
But in Samavia bloody battles were being foughtand bloody plans 
were being wrought outand in anguished anxiety the Secret Party 
and the Forgers of the Sword waited breathlessly for the Sign for 
which they had waited so long. And inside the lining of Marco's 
coat was hidden the sketched faceas the two unnoticed lads made 
their way to the Feldherrn-halle to hear the band play and see 
who might chance to be among the audience. 
Because the day was sunnyand also because the band was playing 
a specially fine programmethe crowd in the square was larger 
than usual. Several vehicles had stoppedand among them were 
one or two which were not merely hired cabs but were the 
carriages of private persons. 
One of them had evidently arrived earlyas it was drawn up in a 
good position when the boys reached the corner. It was a big 
open carriage and a grand oneluxuriously upholstered in green. 
The footman and coachman wore green and silver liveries and 
seemed to know that people were looking at them and their master. 
He was a stoutgenial-looking old aristocrat with a sly smile
thoughas he listened to the musicit almost forgot to be sly. 
In the carriage with him were a young officer and a little boy
and they also listened attentively. Standing near the carriage 
door were several people who were plainly friends or 
acquaintancesas they occasionally spoke to him. Marco touched 
The Rat's coat sleeve as the two boys approached. 
``It would not be easy to get near him'' he said. ``Let us go 
and stand as close to the carriage as we can get without pushing. 
Perhaps we may hear some one say something about where he is 
going after the music is over.'' 
Yesthere was no mistaking him. He was the right man. Each of 
them knew by heart the creases on his stout face and the sweep of 
his gray moustache. But there was nothing noticeable in a boy 
looking for a moment at a piece of paperand Marco sauntered a 
few steps to a bit of space left bare by the crowd and took a 
last glance at his sketch. His rule was to make sure at the 
final moment. The music was very good and the group about the 
carriage was evidently enthusiastic. There was talk and praise 
and commentand the old aristocrat nodded his head repeatedly in 
applause. 
``The Chancellor is music mad'' a looker-on near the boys said 
to another. ``At the opera every night unless serious affairs 
keep him away! There you may see him nodding his old head and 
bursting his gloves with applauding when a good thing is done. 
He ought to have led an orchestra or played a 'cello. He is too 
big for first violin.'' 
There was a group about the carriage to the lastwhen the music 
came to an end and it drove away. There had been no possible 
opportunity of passing close to it even had the presence of the 
young officer and the boy not presented an insurmountable 
obstacle. 
Marco and The Rat went on their way and passed by the Hof-
Theater and read the bills. ``Tristan and Isolde'' was to be 
presented at night and a great singer would sing Isolde. 
``He will go to hear that'' both boys said at once. ``He will 
be sure to go.'' 
It was decided between them that Marco should go on his quest 
alone when night came. One boy who hung around the entrance of 
the Opera would be observed less than two. 
``People notice crutches more than they notice legs'' The Rat 
said. ``I'd better keep out of the way unless you need me. My 
time hasn't come yet. Even if it doesn't come at all I've--I've 
been on duty. I've gone with you and I've been ready- that's what 
an aide-de- camp does.'' 
He stayed at home and read such English papers as he could lay 
hands on and he drew plans and re-fought battles on paper. 
Marco went to the opera. Even if he had not known his way to the 
square near the place where the Hof-Theater stoodhe could 
easily have found it by following the groups of people in the 
streets who all seemed walking in one direction. There were 
students in their odd caps walking three or four abreastthere 
were young couples and older onesand here and there whole 
families; there were soldiers of all agesofficers and privates; 
andwhen talk was to be heard in passingit was always talk 
about music. 
For some time Marco waited in the square and watched the 
carriages roll up and pass under the huge pillared portico to 
deposit their contents at the entrance and at once drive away in 
orderly sequence. He must make sure that the grand carriage with 
the green and silver liveries rolled up with the rest. If it 
camehe would buy a cheap ticket and go inside. 
It was rather late when it arrived. People in Munich are not 
late for the opera if it can be helpedand the coachman drove up 
hurriedly. The green and silver footman leaped to the ground and 
opened the carriage door almost before it stopped. The 
Chancellor got out looking less genial than usual because he was 
afraid that he might lose some of the overture. A rosy-cheeked 
girl in a white frock was with him and she was evidently trying 
to soothe him. 
``I do not think we are really lateFather'' she said. ``Don't 
feel crossdear. It will spoil the music for you.'' 
This was not a time in which a man's attention could be attracted 
quietly. Marco ran to get the ticket which would give him a 
place among the rows of young soldiersartistsmale and female 
studentsand musicians who were willing to stand four or five 
deep throughout the performance of even the longest opera. He 
knew thatunless they were in one of the few boxes which 
belonged only to the courtthe Chancellor and his rosy-cheeked 
daughter would be in the best seats in the front curve of the 
balcony which were the most desirable of the house. He soon saw 
them. They had secured the central places directly below the 
large royal box where two quiet princesses and their attendants 
were already seated. 
When he found he was not too late to hear the overturethe 
Chancellor's face become more genial than ever. He settled 
himself down to an evening of enjoyment and evidently forgot 
everything else in the world. Marco did not lose sight of him. 
When the audience went out between acts to promenade in the 
corridorshe might go also and there might be a chance to pass 
near to him in the crowd. He watched him closely. Sometimes his 
fine old face saddened at the beautiful woe of the music
sometimes it looked enrapturedand it was always evident that 
every note reached his soul. 
The pretty daughter who sat beside him was attentive but not so 
enthralled. After the first act two glittering young officers 
appeared and made elegant and low bowsdrawing their heels 
together as they kissed her hand. They looked sorry when they 
were obliged to return to their seats again. 
After the second act the Chancellor sat for a few minutes as if 
he were in a dream. The people in the seats near him began to 
rise from their seats and file out into the corridors. The young 
officers were to be seen rising also. The rosy daughter leaned 
forward and touched her father's arm gently. 
``She wants him to take her out'' Marco thought. ``He will take 
her because he is good-natured.'' 
He saw him recall himself from his dream with a smile and then he 
rose andafter helping to arrange a silvery blue scarf round the 
girl's shouldersgave her his arm just as Marco skipped out of 
his fourth-row standing-place. 
It was a rather warm night and the corridors were full. By the 
time Marco had reached the balcony floorthe pair had issued 
from the little door and were temporarily lost in the moving 
numbers. 
Marco quietly made his way among the crowd trying to look as if 
he belonged to somebody. Once or twice his strong body and his 
dense black eyes and lashes made people glance at himbut he 
was not the only boy who had been brought to the opera so he felt 
safe enough to stop at the foot of the stairs and watch those who 
went up and those who passed by. Such a miscellaneous crowd as 
it was made up of--good unfashionable music-lovers mixed here and 
there with grand people of the court and the gay world. 
Suddenly he heard a low laugh and a moment later a hand lightly 
touched him. 
``You DID get outthen?'' a soft voice said. 
When he turned he felt his muscles stiffen. He ceased to slouch 
and did not smile as he looked at the speaker. What he felt was 
a wave of fierce and haughty anger. It swept over him before he 
had time to control it. 
A lovely person who seemed swathed in several shades of soft 
violet drapery was smiling at him with longlovely eyes. 
It was the woman who had trapped him into No. 10 Brandon Terrace. 
``HELP!'' 
Did it take you so long to find it? asked the Lovely Person with 
the smile. ``Of course I knew you would find it in the end. But 
we had to give ourselves time. How long did it take?'' 
Marco removed himself from beneath the touch of her hand. It was 
quietly donebut there was a disdain in his young face which 
made her wince though she pretended to shrug her shoulders 
amusedly. 
``You refuse to answer?'' she laughed. 
``I refuse.'' 
At that very moment he saw at the curve of the corridor the 
Chancellor and his daughter approaching slowly. The two young 
officers were talking gaily to the girl. They were on their way 
back to their box. Was he going to lose them? Was he? 
The delicate hand was laid on his shoulder againbut this time 
he felt that it grasped him firmly. 
``Naughty boy!'' the soft voice said. ``I am going to take you 
home with me. If you struggle I shall tell these people that you 
are my bad boy who is here without permission. What will you 
answer? My escort is coming down the staircase and will help me. 
Do you see?'' And in fact there appeared in the crowd at the 
head of the staircase the figure of the man he remembered. 
He did see. A dampness broke out on the palms of his hands. If 
she did this bold thingwhat could he say to those she told her 
lie to? How could he bring proof or explain who he was--and what 
story dare he tell? His protestations and struggles would merely 
amuse the lookers-onwho would see in them only the impotent 
rage of an insubordinate youngster. 
There swept over him a wave of remembrance which brought backas 
if he were living through it againthe moment when he had stood 
in the darkness of the wine cellar with his back against the door 
and heard the man walk away and leave him alone. He felt again 
as he had done then--but now he was in another land and far away 
from his father. He could do nothing to help himself unless 
Something showed him a way. 
He made no soundand the woman who held him saw only a flame 
leap under his dense black lashes. 
But something within him called out. It was as if he heard it. 
It was that strong self--the self that was Marcoand it 
called--it called as if it shouted. 
``Help!'' it called--to that Unknown Stranger Thing which had 
made worlds and which he and his father so often talked of and in 
whose power they so believed. ``Help!'' 
The Chancellor was drawing nearer. Perhaps! Should he--? 
``You are too proud to kick and shout'' the voice went on. 
``And people would only laugh. Do you see?'' 
The stairs were crowded and the man who was at the head of them 
could only move slowly. But he had seen the boy. 
Marco turned so that he could face his captor squarely as if he 
were going to say something in answer to her. But he was not. 
Even as he made the movement of turningthe help he had called 
for came and he knew what he should do. And he could do two 
things at once--save himself and give his Sign--becausethe Sign 
once giventhe Chancellor would understand. 
``He will be here in a moment. He has recognized you'' the 
woman said. 
As he glanced up the stairsthe delicate grip of her hand 
unconsciously slackened. 
Marco whirled away from her. The bell rang which was to warn the 
audience that they must return to their seats and he saw the 
Chancellor hasten his pace. 
A moment laterthe old aristocrat found himself amazedly looking 
down at the pale face of a breathless lad who spoke to him in 
German and in such a manner that he could not but pause and 
listen . 
``Sir'' he was saying``the woman in violet at the foot of the 
stairs is a spy. She trapped me once and she threatens to do it 
again. Sirmay I beg you to protect me?'' 
He said it low and fast. No one else could hear his words. 
``What! What!'' the Chancellor exclaimed. 
And thendrawing a step nearer and quite as low and rapidly but 
with perfect distinctnessMarco uttered four words: 
``The Lamp is lighted.'' 
The Help cry had been answered instantly. Marco saw it at once 
in the old man's eyesnotwithstanding that he turned to look at 
the woman at the foot of the staircase as if she only concerned 
him. 
``What! What!'' he said againand made a movement toward her
pulling his large moustache with a fierce hand. 
Then Marco recognized that a curious thing happened. The Lovely 
Person saw the movement and the gray moustacheand that instant 
her smile died away and she turned quite white--so whitethat 
under the brilliant electric light she was almost green and 
scarcely looked lovely at all. She made a sign to the man on the 
staircase and slipped through the crowd like an eel. She was a 
slim flexible creature and never was a disappearance more 
wonderful in its rapidity. Between stout matrons and their thin 
or stout escorts and families she made her way and lost 
herself--but always making toward the exit. In two minutes there 
was no sight of her violet draperies to be seen. She was gone 
and soevidentlywas her male companion. 
It was plain to Marco that to follow the profession of a spy was 
not by any means a safe thing. The Chancellor had recognized 
her-- she had recognized the Chancellor who turned looking 
ferociously angry and spoke to one of the young officers. 
``She and the man with her are two of the most dangerous spies in 
EuropeShe is a Rumanian and he is a Russian. What they wanted 
of this innocent lad I don't pretend to know. What did she 
threaten?'' to Marco. 
Marco was feeling rather cold and sick and had lost his healthy 
color for the moment. 
``She said she meant to take me home with her and would pretend I 
was her son who had come here without permission'' he answered. 
``She believes I know something I do not.'' He made a hesitating 
but grateful bow. ``The third actsir--I must not keep you. 
Thank you! Thank you!'' 
The Chancellor moved toward the entrance door of the balcony 
seatsbut he did it with his hand on Marco's shoulder. 
``See that he gets home safely'' he said to the younger of the 
two officers. ``Send a messenger with him. He's young to be 
attacked by creatures of that kind.'' 
Polite young officers naturally obey the commands of Chancellors 
and such dignitaries. This one found without trouble a young 
private who marched with Marco through the deserted streets to 
his lodgings. He was a stolid young Bavarian peasant and seemed 
to have no curiosity or even any interest in the reason for the 
command given him. He was in fact thinking of his sweetheart who 
lived near Konigsee and who had skated with him on the frozen 
lake last winter. He scarcely gave a glance to the schoolboy he 
was to escorthe neither knew nor wondered why. 
The Rat had fallen asleep over his papers and lay with his head 
on his folded arms on the table. But he was awakened by Marco's 
coming into the room and sat up blinking his eyes in the effort 
to get them open. 
``Did you see him? Did you get near enough?'' he drowsed. 
``Yes'' Marco answered. ``I got near enough.' 
The Rat sat upright suddenly. 
``It's not been easy'' he exclaimed. ``I'm sure something 
happened --something went wrong.'' 
``Something nearly went wrong--VERY nearly'' answered Marco. 
But as he spoke he took the sketch of the Chancellor out of the 
slit in his sleeve and tore it and burned it with a match. ``But 
I did get near enough. And that's TWO.'' 
They talked longbefore they went to sleep that night. The Rat 
grew pale as he listened to the story of the woman in violet. 
``I ought to have gone with you!'' he said. ``I see now. An 
aide- de-camp must always be in attendance. It would have been 
harder for her to manage two than one. I must always be near to 
watcheven if I am not close by you. If you had not come 
back--if you had not come back!'' He struck his clenched hands 
together fiercely. ``What should I have done!'' 
When Marco turned toward him from the table near which he was 
standinghe looked like his father. 
``You would have gone on with the Game just as far as you 
could'' he said. ``You could not leave it. You remember the 
placesand the facesand the Sign. There is some money; and 
when it was all goneyou could have beggedas we used to 
pretend we should. 
We have not had to do it yet; and it was best to save it for 
country places and villages. But you could have done it if you 
were obliged to. The Game would have to go on.'' 
The Rat caught at his thin chest as if he had been struck 
breathless. 
``Without you?'' he gasped. ``Without you?'' 
``Yes'' said Marco. ``And we must think of itand plan in case 
anything like that should happen.'' 
He stopped himself quite suddenlyand sat downlooking straight 
before himas if at some far away thing he saw. 
``Nothing will happen'' he said. ``Nothing can.'' 
``What are you thinking of?'' The Rat gulpedbecause his breath 
had not quite come back. ``Why will nothing happen?'' 
``Because--'' the boy spoke in an almost matter-of-fact tone--in 
quite an unexalted tone at all events``you see I can always 
make a strong callas I did tonight.'' 
``Did you shout?'' The Rat asked. ``I didn't know you shouted.'' 
``I didn't. I said nothing aloud. But I--the myself that is in 
me'' Marco touched himself on the breast``called out`Help! 
Help!' with all its strength. And help came.'' 
The Rat regarded him dubiously. 
``What did it call to?'' he asked. 
``To the Power--to the Strength-place--to the Thought that does 
things. The Buddhist hermitwho told my father about itcalled 
it `The Thought that thought the World.' '' 
A reluctant suspicion betrayed itself in The Rat's eyes. 
``Do you mean you prayed?'' he inquiredwith a slight touch of 
disfavor. 
Marco's eyes remained fixed upon him in vague thoughtfulness for 
a moment or so of pause. 
``I don't know'' he said at last. ``Perhaps it's the same 
thing-- when you need something so much that you cry out loud for 
it. But it's not wordsit's a strong thing without a name. I 
called like that when I was shut in the wine-cellar. I 
remembered some of the things the old Buddhist told my father.'' 
The Rat moved restlessly. 
``The help came that time'' he admitted. ``How did it come to-
night?'' 
``In that thought which flashed into my mind almost the next 
second. It came like lightning. All at once I knew if I ran to 
the Chancellor and said the woman was a spyit would startle him 
into listening to me; and that then I could give him the Sign; 
and that when I gave him the Signhe would know I was speaking 
the truth and would protect me.'' 
``It was a splendid thought!'' The Rat said. ``And it was quick. 
But it was you who thought of it.'' 
``All thinking is part of the Big Thought'' said Marco slowly. 
``It KNOWS--It KNOWS. And the outside part of us somehow broke 
the chain that linked us to It. And we are always trying to mend 
the chainwithout knowing it. That is what our thinking 
is--trying to mend the chain. But we shall find out how to do it 
sometime. The old Buddhist told my father so--just as the sun 
was rising from behind a high peak of the Himalayas.'' Then he 
added hastily``I am only telling you what my father told me
and he only told me what the old hermit told him.'' 
``Does your father believe what he told him?'' The Rat's 
bewilderment had become an eager and restless thing. 
``Yeshe believes it. He always thought something like it
himself. That is why he is so calm and knows so well how to 
wait.'' 
``Is THAT it!'' breathed The Rat. ``Is that why? Has--has he 
mended the chain?'' And there was awe in his voicebecause of 
this one man to whom he felt any achievement was possible. 
``I believe he has'' said Marco. ``Don't you think so 
yourself?'' 
``He has done something'' The Rat said. 
He seemed to be thinking things over before he spoke again-- and 
then even more slowly than Marco. 
``If he could mend the chain'' he said almost in a whisper``he 
could find out where the descendant of the Lost Prince is. He 
would know what to do for Samavia!'' 
He ended the words with a startand his whole face glowed with a 
newamazed light. 
``Perhaps he does know!'' he cried. ``If the help comes like 
thoughts --as yours did--perhaps his thought of letting us give 
the Sign was part of it. We--just we two every-day boys--are 
part of it!'' 
``The old Buddhist said--'' began Marco. 
``Look here!'' broke in The Rat. ``Tell me the whole story. I 
want to hear it.'' 
It was because Loristan had heard itand listened and believed
that The Rat had taken fire. His imagination seized upon the 
ideaas it would have seized on some theory of necromancy proved 
true and workable. 
With his elbows on the table and his hands in his hairhe leaned 
forwardtwisting a lock with restless fingers. His breath 
quickened. 
``Tell it'' he said``I want to hear it all!'' 
``I shall have to tell it in my own words'' Marco said. ``And 
it won't be as wonderful as it was when my father told it to me. 
This is what I remember: 
``My father had gone through much pain and trouble. A great load 
was upon himand he had been told he was going to die before his 
work was done. He had gone to Indiabecause a man he was 
obliged to speak to had gone there to huntand no one knew when 
he would return. My father followed him for months from one wild 
place to anotherandwhen he found himthe man would not hear 
or believe what he had come so far to say. Then he had 
jungle-fever and almost died. Once the natives left him for dead 
in a bungalow in the forestand he heard the jackals howling 
round him all the night. Through all the hours he was only alive 
enough to be conscious of two things--all the rest of him seemed 
gone from his body: his thought knew that his work was 
unfinished--and his body heard the jackals howl!'' 
``Was the work for Samavia?'' The Rat put in quickly. ``If he 
had died that nightthe descendant of the Lost Prince never 
would have been found--never!'' The Rat bit his lip so hard that 
a drop of blood started from it. 
``When he was slowly coming alive againa nativewho had gone 
back and stayed to wait upon himtold him that near the summit 
of a mountainabout fifty miles awaythere was a ledge which 
jutted out into space and hung over the valleywhich was 
thousands of feet below. On the ledge there was a hut in which 
there lived an ancient Buddhistwho was a holy manas they 
called himand who had been there during time which had not 
been measured. They said that their grandparents and 
great-grandparents had known of himthough very few persons had 
ever seen him. It was told that the most savage beast was tame 
before him. They said that a man- eating tiger would stop to 
salute himand that a thirsty lioness would bring her whelps to 
drink at the spring near his hut.'' 
``That was a lie'' said The Rat promptly. 
Marco neither laughed nor frowned. 
``How do we KNOW?'' he said. ``It was a native's storyand it 
might be anything. My father neither said it was true nor false. 
He listened to all that was told him by natives. They said that 
the holy man was the brother of the stars. He knew all things 
past and to comeand could heal the sick. But most people
especially those who had sinful thoughtswere afraid to go near 
him.'' 
``I'd like to have seen--'' The Rat pondered aloudbut he did 
not finish. 
``Before my father was wellhe had made up his mind to travel to 
the ledge if he could. He felt as if he must go. He thought 
that if he were going to diethe hermit might tell him some wise 
thing to do for Samavia.'' 
``He might have given him a message to leave to the Secret 
Ones'' said The Rat. 
``He was so weak when he set out on his journey that he wondered 
if he would reach the end of it. Part of the way he traveled by 
bullock cartand parthe was carried by natives. But at last 
the bearers came to a place more than halfway up the mountain
and would go no further. Then they went back and left him to 
climb the rest of the way himself. They had traveled slowly and 
he had got more strengthbut he was weak yet. The forest was 
more wonderful than anything he had ever seen. There were 
tropical trees with foliage like laceand some with huge leaves
and some of them seemed to reach the sky. Sometimes he could 
barely see gleams of blue through them. And vines swung down 
from their high branchesand caught each otherand matted 
together; and there were hot scentsand strange flowersand 
dazzling birds darting aboutand thick mossand little 
cascades bursting out. The path grew narrower and steeperand 
the flower scents and the sultriness made it like walking in a 
hothouse. He heard rustlings in the undergrowthwhich might 
have been made by any kind of wild animal; once he stepped across 
a deadly snake without seeing it. But it was asleep and did not 
hurt him. He knew the natives had been convinced that he would 
not reach the ledge; but for some strange reason he believed he 
should. He stopped and rested many timesand he drank some milk 
he had brought in a canteen. The higher he climbedthe more 
wonderful everything wasand a strange feeling began to fill 
him. He said his body stopped being tired and began to feel very 
light. And his load lifted itself from his heartas if it were 
not his load any more but belonged to something stronger. Even 
Samavia seemed to be safe. As he went higher and higherand 
looked down the abyss at the world belowit appeared as if it 
were not real but only a dream he had wakened from--only a 
dream.'' 
The Rat moved restlessly. 
``Perhaps he was light-headed with the fever'' he suggested. 
``The fever had left himand the weakness had left him'' Marco 
answered. ``It seemed as if he had never really been ill at 
all-- as if no one could be illbecause things like that were 
only dreamsjust as the world was.'' 
``I wish I'd been with him! Perhaps I could have thrown these 
away--down into the abyss!'' And The Rat shook his crutches 
which rested against the table. ``I feel as if I was climbing
too. Go on.'' 
Marco had become more absorbed than The Rat. He had lost himself 
in the memory of the story. 
``I felt that _I_ was climbingwhen he told me'' he said. ``I 
felt as if I were breathing in the hot flower-scents and pushing 
aside the big leaves and giant ferns. There had been a rainand 
they were wet and shining with big dropslike jewelsthat 
showered over him as he thrust his way through and under them. 
And the stillness and the height--the stillness and the height! 
I can't make it real to you as he made it to me! I can't! I was 
there. He took me. And it was so high--and so still--and so 
beautiful that I could scarcely bear it.'' 
But the truth wasthat with some vivid boy-touch he had carried 
his hearer far. The Rat was deadly quiet. Even his eyes had not 
moved. He spoke almost as if he were in a sort of trance. 
``It's real'' he said. ``I'm there now. As high as you--go 
on--go on. I want to climb higher.'' 
And Marcounderstandingwent on. 
``The day was over and the stars were out when he reached the 
place were the ledge was. He said he thought that during the 
last part of the climb he never looked on the earth at all. The 
stars were so immense that he could not look away from them. 
They seemed to be drawing him up. And all overhead was like 
violet velvetand they hung there like great lamps of radiance. 
Can you see them? You must see them. My father saw them all 
night long. They were part of the wonder.'' 
``I see them'' The Rat answeredstill in his trance-like voice 
and without stirringand Marco knew he did. 
``And therewith the huge stars watching itwas the hut on the 
ledge. And there was no one there. The door was open. And 
outside it was a low bench and table of stone. And on the table 
was a meal of dates and ricewaiting. Not far from the hut was 
a deep springwhich ran away in a clear brook. My father drank 
and bathed his face there. Then he went out on the ledgeand 
sat down and waitedwith his face turned up to the stars. He 
did not lie downand he thought he saw the stars all the time he 
waited. He was sure he did not sleep. He did not know how long 
he sat there alone. But at last he drew his eyes from the stars
as if he had been commanded to do it. And he was not alone any 
more. A yard or so away from him sat the holy man. He knew it 
was the hermit because his eyes were different from any human 
eyes he had ever beheld. They were as still as the night was
and as deep as the shadows covering the world thousands of feet 
belowand they had a farfar lookand a strange light was in 
them.'' 
``What did he say?'' asked The Rat hoarsely. 
``He only said`Risemy son. I awaited thee. Go and eat the 
food I prepared for theeand then we will speak together.' He 
didn't move or speak again until my father had eaten the meal. 
He only sat on the moss and let his eyes rest on the shadows over 
the abyss. When my father went backhe made a gesture which 
meant that he should sit near him. 
``Then he sat still for several minutesand let his eyes rest on 
my fatheruntil he felt as if the light in them were set in the 
midst of his own body and his soul. Then he said`I cannot tell 
thee all thou wouldst know. That I may not do.' He had a 
wonderful gentle voicelike a deep soft bell. `But the work 
will be done. Thy life and thy son's life will set it on its 
way.' 
``They sat through the whole night together. And the stars hung 
quite nearas if they listened. And there were sounds in the 
bushes of stealthypadding feet which wandered about as if the 
owners of them listened too. And the wonderfullowpeaceful 
voice of the holy man went on and ontelling of wonders which 
seemed like miracles but which were to him only the `working of 
the Law.' '' 
``What is the Law?'' The Rat broke in. 
``There were two my father wrote downand I learned them. The 
first was the law of The One. I'll try to say that'' and he 
covered his eyes and waited through a moment of silence. 
It seemed to The Rat as if the room held an extraordinary 
stillness. 
``Listen!'' came next. ``This is it: 
`` `There are a myriad worlds. There is but One Thought out of 
which they grew. Its Law is Order which cannot swerve. Its 
creatures are free to choose. Only they can create Disorder
which in itself is Pain and Woe and Hate and Fear. These they 
alone can bring forth. The Great One is a Golden Light. It is 
not remote but near. Hold thyself within its glow and thou wilt 
behold all things clearly. Firstwith all thy breathing being
know one thing! That thine own thought--when so thou 
standest--is one with That which thought the Worlds!' '' 
``What?'' gasped The Rat. ``MY thought--the things _I_ think!'' 
``Your thoughts--boys' thoughts--anybody's thoughts.'' 
``You're giving me the jim-jams!'' 
``He said it'' answered Marco. ``And it was then he spoke about 
the broken Link--and about the greatest books in the world--that 
in all their different waysthey were only saying over and over 
again one thing thousands of times. Just this thing--`Hate not
Fear notLove.' And he said that was Order. And when it was 
disturbedsuffering came--poverty and misery and catastrophe and 
wars.'' 
``Wars!'' The Rat said sharply. ``The World couldn't do without 
war--and armies and defences! What about Samavia?'' 
``My father asked him that. And this is what he answered. I 
learned that too. Let me think again'' and he waited as he had 
waited before. Then he lifted his head. ``Listen! This is it: 
`` `Out of the blackness of Disorder and its outpouring of human 
miserythere will arise the Order which is Peace. When Man 
learns that he is one with the Thought which itself creates all 
beautyall powerall splendorand all reposehe will not fear 
that his brother can rob him of his heart's desire. He will 
stand in the Light and draw to himself his own.' '' 
``Draw to himself?'' The Rat said. ``Draw what he wants? I 
don't believe it!'' 
``Nobody does'' said Marco. ``We don't know. He said we stood 
in the dark of the night--without stars--and did not know that 
the broken chain swung just above us.'' 
``I don't believe it!'' said The Rat. ``It's too big!'' 
Marco did not say whether he believed it or not. He only went on 
speaking. 
``My father listened until he felt as if he had stopped 
breathing. Just at the stillest of the stillness the Buddhist 
stopped speaking. And there was a rustling of the undergrowth a 
few yards awayas if something big was pushing its way 
through--and there was the soft pad of feet. The Buddhist turned 
his head and my father heard him say softly: `Come forth
Sister.' 
``And a huge leopardess with two cubs walked out on to the ledge 
and came to him and threw herself down with a heavy lunge near 
his feet.'' 
``Your father saw that!'' cried out The Rat. ``You mean the old 
fellow knew something that made wild beasts afraid to touch him 
or any one near him?'' 
``Not afraid. They knew he was their brotherand that he was 
one with the Law. He had lived so long with the Great Thought 
that all darkness and fear had left him forever. He had mended 
the Chain.'' 
The Rat had reached deep waters. He leaned forward--his hands 
burrowing in his hairhis face scowling and twistedhis eyes 
boring into space. He had climbed to the ledge at the 
mountain-top; he had seen the luminous immensity of the stars
and he had looked down into the shadows filling the world 
thousands of feet below. Was there some remote deep in him from 
whose darkness a slow light was rising? All that Loristan had 
said he knew must be true. But the rest of it--? 
Marco got up and came over to him. He looked like his father 
again. 
``If the descendant of the Lost Prince is brought back to rule 
Samaviahe will teach his people the Law of the One. It was for 
that the holy man taught my father until the dawn came.'' 
``Who will--who will teach the Lost Prince--the new King--when he 
is found?'' The Rat cried. ``Who will teach him?'' 
``The hermit said my father would. He said he would also teach 
his son--and that son would teach his son--and he would teach 
his. And through such as they werethe whole world would come 
to know the Order and the Law.'' 
Never had The Rat looked so strange and fierce a thing. A whole 
world at peace! No tactics--no battles--no slaughtered heroes 
--no clash of armsand fame! It made him feel sick. And yet-something 
set his chest heaving. 
``And your father would teach him that--when he was found! So 
that he could teach his sons. Your father BELIEVES in it?'' 
``Yes'' Marco answered. He said nothing but ``Yes.'' The Rat 
threw himself forward on the tableface downward. 
``Then'' he said``he must make me believe it. He must teach 
me--if he can.'' 
They heard a clumping step upon the staircaseandwhen it 
reached the landingit stopped at their door. Then there was a 
solid knock. 
When Marco opened the doorthe young soldier who had escorted 
him from the Hof-Theater was standing outside. He looked as 
uninterested and stolid as beforeas he handed in a small flat 
package. 
``You must have dropped it near your seat at the Opera'' he 
said. ``I was to give it into your own hands. It is your 
purse.'' 
After he had clumped down the staircase againMarco and The Rat 
drew a quick breath at one and the same time. 
``I had no seat and I had no purse'' Marco said. ``Let us open 
it.'' 
There was a flat limp leather note-holder inside. In it was a 
paperat the head of which were photographs of the Lovely Person 
and her companion. Beneath were a few lines which stated that 
they were the well known spiesEugenia Karovna and Paul Varel
and that the bearer must be protected against them. It was 
signed by the Chief of the Police. On a separate sheet was 
written the command: ``Carry this with you as protection.'' 
``That is help'' The Rat said. ``It would protect useven in 
another country. The Chancellor sent it--but you made the strong 
call --and it's here!'' 
There was no street lamp to shine into their windows when they 
went at last to bed. When the blind was drawn upthey were 
nearer the sky than they had been in the Marylebone Road. The 
last thing each of them sawas he went to sleepwas the 
stars--and in their dreamsthey saw them grow larger and larger
and hang like lamps of radiance against the violet--velvet sky 
above a ledge of a Himalayan Mountainwhere they listened to the 
sound of a low voice going on and on and on. 
A NIGHT VIGIL 
On a hill in the midst of a great Austrian plainaround which 
high Alps wait watching through the ages stands a venerable 
fortressalmost more beautiful than anything one has ever seen. 
Perhapsif it were not for the great plain flowering broadly 
about it with its wide-spread beauties of meadow-landand wood
and dim toned buildings gathered about farmsand its dream of a 
small ancient city at its feetit might--though it is to be 
doubted--seem something less a marvel of medieval 
picturesqueness. But out of the plain rises the low hilland 
surrounding it at a stately distance stands guard the giant 
majesty of Alpswith shoulders in the clouds and god-like heads 
above themlooking on--always looking on--sometimes themselves 
ethereal clouds of snow-whitenesssome times monster bare crags 
which pierce the blueand whose unchanging silence seems to know 
the secret of the everlasting. And on the hill which this august 
circle holds in its embraceas though it enclosed a treasure
stands the oldoldtowered fortress built as a citadel for the 
Prince Archbishopswho were kings in their domain in the long 
past centuries when the splendor and power of ecclesiastical 
princes was among the greatest upon earth. 
And as you approach the town--and as you leave it--and as you 
walk through its streetsthe broad calm empty-looking onesor 
the narrow thoroughfares whose houses seem so near to each other
whether you climb or descend--or cross bridgesor gaze at 
churchesor step out on your balcony at night to look at the 
mountains and the moon--always it seems that from some point you 
can see it gazing down at you--the citadel of Hohen-Salzburg. 
It was to Salzburg they went nextbecause at Salzburg was to be 
found the man who looked like a hair-dresser and who worked in a 
barber's shop. Strange as it might seemto him also must be 
carried the Sign. 
``There may be people who come to him to be shaved--soldiersor 
men who know things'' The Rat worked it out``and he can speak 
to them when he is standing close to them. It will be easy to 
get near him. You can go and have your hair cut.'' 
The journey from Munich was not a long oneand during the latter 
part of it they had the wooden-seated third-class carriage to 
themselves. Even the drowsy old peasant who nodded and slept in 
one corner got out with his bundles at last. To Marco the 
mountains were long-known wonders which could never grow old. 
They had always and always been so old! Surely they had been the 
first of the world! Surely they had been standing there waiting 
when it was said ``Let there be Light.'' The Light had known it 
would find them there. They were so silentand yet it seemed as 
if they said some amazing thing--something which would take your 
breath from you if you could hear it. And they never changed. 
The clouds changedthey wreathed themand hid themand trailed 
down themand poured out storm torrents on themand thundered 
against themand darted forked lightnings round them. But the 
mountains stood there afterwards as if such things had not been 
and were not in the world. Winds roared and tore at them
centuries passed over them--centuries of millions of livesof 
changing of kingdoms and empiresof battles and world-wide fame 
which grew and died and passed away; and temples crumbledand 
kings' tombs were forgottenand cities were buried and others 
built over them after hundreds of years--and perhaps a few stones 
fell from a mountain sideor a fissure was wornwhich the 
people below could not even see. And that was all. There they 
stoodand perhaps their secret was that they had been there for 
ever and ever. That was what the mountains said to Marcowhich 
was why he did not want to talk muchbut sat and gazed out of 
the carriage window. 
The Rat had been very silent all the morning. He had been silent 
when they got upand he had scarcely spoken when they made their 
way to the station at Munich and sat waiting for their train. It 
seemed to Marco that he was thinking so hard that he was like a 
person who was far away from the place he stood in. His brows 
were drawn together and his eyes did not seem to see the people 
who passed by. Usually he saw everything and made shrewd remarks 
on almost all he saw. But to-day he was somehow otherwise 
absorbed. He sat in the train with his forehead against the 
window and stared out. He moved and gasped when he found himself 
staring at the Alpsbut afterwards he was even strangely still. 
It was not until after the sleepy old peasant had gathered his 
bundles and got out at a station that he spokeand he did it 
without turning his head. 
``You only told me one of the two laws'' he said. ``What was 
the other one?'' 
Marco brought himself back from his dream of reaching the highest 
mountain-top and seeing clouds float beneath his feet in the sun. 
He had to come back a long way. 
``Are you thinking of that? I wondered what you had been 
thinking of all the morning'' he said. 
``I couldn't stop thinking of it. What was the second one?'' 
said The Ratbut he did not turn his head. 
``It was called the Law of Earthly Living. It was for every 
day'' said Marco. ``It was for the ordering of common 
things--the small things we think don't matteras well as the 
big ones. I always remember that one without any trouble. This 
was it: 
`` `Let pass through thy mindmy sononly the image thou 
wouldst desire to see become a truth. Meditate only upon the 
wish of thy heart--seeing first that it is such as can wrong no 
man and is not ignoble. Then will it take earthly form and draw 
near to thee. 
`` `This is the Law of That which Creates.' '' 
Then The Rat turned round. He had a shrewdly reasoning mind. 
``That sounds as if you could get anything you wantedif you 
think about it long enough and in the right way'' he said. 
``But perhaps it only means thatif you do ityou'll be happy 
after you're dead. My father used to shout with laughing when he 
was drunk and talked about things like that and looked at his 
rags.'' 
He hugged his knees for a few minutes. He was remembering the 
ragsand the fog-darkened room in the slumsand the loud
hideous laughter. 
``What if you want something that will harm somebody else?'' he 
said next. ``What if you hate some one and wish you could kill 
him?'' 
``That was one of the questions my father asked that night on the 
ledge. The holy man said people always asked it'' Marco 
answered. ``This was the answer: 
`` `Let him who stretcheth forth his hand to draw the lightning 
to his brother recall that through his own soul and body will 
pass the bolt.' '' 
``Wonder if there's anything in it?'' The Rat pondered. ``It'd 
make a chap careful if he believed it! Revenging yourself on a 
man would be like holding him against a live wire to kill him and 
getting all the volts through yourself.'' 
A sudden anxiety revealed itself in his face. 
``Does your father believe it?'' he asked. ``Does he?'' 
``He knows it is true'' Marco said. 
``I'll own up'' The Rat decided after further reflection--``I'll 
own up I'm glad that there isn't any one left that I've a grudge 
against. There isn't any one--now.'' 
Then he fell again into silence and did not speak until their 
journey was at an end. As they arrived early in the daythey 
had plenty of time to wander about the marvelous little old city. 
But through the wide streets and through the narrow onesunder 
the archways into the market gardensacross the bridge and into 
the square where the ``glockenspiel'' played its old tinkling 
tuneeverywhere the Citadel looked down and always The Rat 
walked on in his dream. 
They found the hair-dresser's shop in one of the narrow streets. 
There were no grand shops thereand this particular shop was a 
modest one. They walked past it onceand then went back. It 
was a shop so humble that there was nothing remarkable in two 
common boys going into it to have their hair cut. An old man 
came forward to receive them. He was evidently glad of their 
modest patronage. He undertook to attend to The Rat himself
buthaving arranged him in a chairhe turned about and called 
to some one in the back room. 
``Heinrich'' he said. 
In the slit in Marco's sleeve was the sketch of the man with 
smooth curled hairwho looked like a hair-dresser. They had 
found a corner in which to take their final look at it before 
they turned back to come in. Heinrichwho came forth from the 
small back roomhad smooth curled hair. He looked extremely 
like a hair- dresser. He had features like those in the 
sketch--his nose and mouth and chin and figure were like what 
Marco had drawn and committed to memory. But--
He gave Marco a chair and tied the professional white covering 
around his neck. Marco leaned back and closed his eyes a moment. 
``That is NOT the man!'' he was saying to himself. ``He is NOT 
the man.'' 
How he knew he was nothe could not have explainedbut he felt 
sure. It was a strong conviction. But for the sudden feeling
nothing would have been easier than to give the Sign. And if he 
could not give it nowwhere was the one to whom it must be 
spokenand what would be the result if that one could not be 
found? And if there were two who were so much alikehow could 
he be sure? 
Each owner of each of the pictured faces was a link in a powerful 
secret chain; and if a link were missedthe chain would be 
broken. Each time Heinrich came within the line of his vision
he recorded every feature afresh and compared it with the 
remembered sketch. Each time the resemblance became more close
but each time some persistent inner conviction repeated``No; 
the Sign is not for him!'' 
It was disturbingalsoto find that The Rat was all at once as 
restless as he had previously been silent and preoccupied. He 
moved in his chairto the great discomfort of the old 
hair-dresser. He kept turning his head to talk. He asked Marco 
to translate divers questions he wished him to ask the two men. 
They were questions about the Citadel--about the Monchsberg--the 
Residenz--the Glockenspiel--the mountains. He added one query to 
another and could not sit still. 
``The young gentleman will get an ear snipped'' said the old man 
to Marco. ``And it will not be my fault.'' 
``What shall I do?'' Marco was thinking. ``He is not the man.'' 
He did not give the Sign. He must go away and think it out
though where his thoughts would lead him he did not know. This 
was a more difficult problem than he had ever dreamed of facing. 
There was no one to ask advice of. Only himself and The Ratwho 
was nervously wriggling and twisting in his chair. 
``You must sit still'' he said to him. ``The hair-dresser is 
afraid you will make him cut you by accident.'' 
``But I want to know who lives at the Residenz?'' said The Rat. 
``These men can tell us things if you ask them.'' 
``It is done now'' said the old hair-dresser with a relieved 
air. ``Perhaps the cutting of his hair makes the young gentleman 
nervous. It is sometimes so.'' 
The Rat stood close to Marco's chair and asked questions until 
Heinrich also had done his work. Marco could not understand his 
companion's change of mood. He realized thatif he had wished 
to give the Signhe had been allowed no opportunity. He could 
not have given it. The restless questioning had so directed the 
older man's attention to his son and Marco that nothing could 
have been said to Heinrich without his observing it. 
``I could not have spoken if he had been the man'' Marco said to 
himself. 
Their very exit from the shop seemed a little hurried. When they 
were fairly in the streetThe Rat made a clutch at Marco's arm. 
``You didn't give it?'' he whispered breathlessly. ``I kept 
talking and talking to prevent you.'' 
Marco tried not to feel breathlessand he tried to speak in a 
low and level voice with no hint of exclamation in it. 
``Why did you say that?'' he asked. 
The Rat drew closer to him. 
``That was not the man!'' he whispered. ``It doesn't matter how 
much he looks like himhe isn't the right one.'' 
He was pale and swinging along swiftly as if he were in a hurry. 
``Let's get into a quiet place'' he said. ``Those queer things 
you've been telling me have got hold of me. How did I know? How 
could I know--unless it's because I've been trying to work that 
second law? I've been saying to myself that we should be told 
the right things to do--for the Game and for your father-- and so 
that I could be the right sort of aide-de-camp. I've been 
working at itandwhen he came outI knew he was not the man 
in spite of his looks. And I couldn't be sure you knewand I 
thoughtif I kept on talking and interrupting you with silly 
questionsyou could be prevented from speaking.'' 
``There's a place not far away where we can get a look at the 
mountains. Let's go there and sit down'' said Marco. ``I knew 
it was not the right onetoo. It's the Help over again.'' 
``Yesit's the Help--it's the Help--it must be'' muttered The 
Ratwalking fast and with a paleset face. ``It could not be 
anything else.'' 
They got away from the streets and the people and reached the 
quiet place where they could see the mountains. There they sat 
down by the wayside. The Rat took off his cap and wiped his 
foreheadbut it was not only the quick walking which had made it 
damp. 
``The queerness of it gave me a kind of fright'' he said. 
``When he came out and he was near enough for me to see hima 
sudden strong feeling came over me. It seemed as if I knew he 
wasn't the man. Then I said to myself--`but he looks like 
him'--and I began to get nervous. And then I was sure again--and 
then I wanted to try to stop you from giving him the Sign. And 
then it all seemed foolishness--and the next second all the 
things you had told me rushed back to me at once--and I 
remembered what I had been thinking ever since--and I 
said--`Perhaps it's the Law beginning to work' and the palms of 
my hands got moist.'' 
Marco was very quiet. He was looking at the farthest and highest 
peaks and wondering about many things. 
``It was the expression of his face that was different'' he 
said. ``And his eyes. They are rather smaller than the right 
man's are. The light in the shop was poorand it was not until 
the last time he bent over me that I found out what I had not 
seen before. His eyes are gray--the other ones are brown.'' 
``Did you see that!'' The Rat exclaimed. ``Then we're sure! 
We're safe!'' 
``We're not safe till we've found the right man'' Marco said. 
``Where is he? Where is he? Where is he?'' 
He said the words dreamily and quietlyas if he were lost in 
thought--but also rather as if he expected an answer. And he 
still looked at the far-off peaks. The Ratafter watching him a 
moment or sobegan to look at them also. They were like a 
loadstone to him too. There was something stilling about them
and when your eyes had rested upon them a few moments they did 
not want to move away. 
``There must be a ledge up there somewhere'' he said at last. 
``Let's go up and look for it and sit there and think and think-about 
finding the right man.'' 
There seemed nothing fantastic in this to Marco. To go into some 
quiet place and sit and think about the thing he wanted to 
remember or to find out was an old way of his. To be quiet was 
always the best thinghis father had taught him. It was like 
listening to something which could speak without words. 
``There is a little train which goes up the Gaisberg'' he said. 
``When you are at the topa world of mountains spreads around 
you. Lazarus went once and told me. And we can lie out on the 
grass all night. Let us goAide-de-camp.'' 
So they wenteach one thinking the same thoughtand each 
boy-mind holding its own vision. Marco was the calmer of the 
twobecause his belief that there was always help to be found 
was an accustomed one and had ceased to seem to partake of the 
supernatural. He believed quite simply that it was the working 
of a lawnot the breaking of onewhich gave answer and led him 
in his quests. The Ratwho had known nothing of laws other than 
those administered by police-courtswas at once awed and 
fascinated by the suggestion of crossing some borderland of the 
Unknown. The law of the One had baffled and overthrown himwith 
its sweeping away of the enmities of passions which created wars 
and called for armies. But the Law of Earthly Living seemed to 
offer practical benefits if you could hold on to yourself enough 
to work it. 
``You wouldn't get everything for nothingas far as I can make 
out'' he had said to Marco. ``You'd have to sweep all the 
rubbish out of your mind--sweep it as if you did it with a 
broom--and then keep on thinking straight and believing you were 
going to get things--and working for them--and they'd come.'' 
Then he had laughed a short ugly laugh because he recalled 
something. 
``There was something in the Bible that my father used to jeer 
about--something about a man getting what he prayed for if he 
believed it'' he said. 
``Ohyesit's there'' said Marco. ``That if a man pray 
believing he shall receive what he asks it shall be given him. 
All the books say something like it. It's been said so often it 
makes you believe it.'' 
``He didn't believe itand I didn't'' said The Rat. 
``Nobody does--really'' answered Marcoas he had done once 
before. ``It's because we don't know.'' 
They went up the Gaisberg in the little trainwhich pushed and 
dragged and panted slowly upward with them. It took them with it 
stubbornly and gradually higher and higher until it had left 
Salzburg and the Citadel below and had reached the world of 
mountains which rose and spread and lifted great heads behind 
each other and beside each other and beyond each other until 
there seemed no other land on earth but that on mountain sides 
and backs and shoulders and crowns. And also one felt the 
absurdity of living upon flat groundwhere life must be an 
insignificant thing. 
There were only a few sight-seers in the small carriagesand 
they were going to look at the view from the summit. They were 
not in search of a ledge. 
The Rat and Marco were. When the little train stopped at the 
topthey got out with the rest. They wandered about with them 
over the short grass on the treeless summit and looked out from 
this viewpoint and the other. The Rat grew more and more silent
and his silence was not merely a matter of speechlessness but of 
expression. He LOOKED silent and as if he were no longer aware 
of the earth. They left the sight-seers at last and wandered 
away by themselves. They found a ledge where they could sit or 
lie and where even the world of mountains seemed below them. 
They had brought some simple food with themand they laid it 
behind a jutting bit of rock. When the sight-seers boarded the 
laboring little train again and were dragged back down the 
mountaintheir night of vigil would begin. 
That was what it was to be. A night of stillness on the heights
where they could wait and watch and hold themselves ready to hear 
any thought which spoke to them. 
The Rat was so thrilled that he would not have been surprised if 
he had heard a voice from the place of the stars. But Marco only 
believed that in this great stillness and beautyif he held his 
boy-soul quiet enoughhe should find himself at last thinking of 
something that would lead him to the place which held what it was 
best that he should find. The people returned to the train and 
it set out upon its way down the steepness. 
They heard it laboring on its wayas though it was forced to 
make as much effort to hold itself back as it had made to drag 
itself upward. 
Then they were aloneand it was a loneness such as an eagle 
might feel when it held itself poised high in the curve of blue. 
And they sat and watched. They saw the sun go down andshade by 
shadedeepen and make radiant and then draw away with it the 
last touches of color--rose-goldrose-purpleand rose-gray. 
One mountain-top after another held its blush a few moments and 
lost it. It took long to gather them all but at length they were 
gone and the marvel of night fell. 
The breath of the forests below was sweet about themand 
soundlessness enclosed them which was of unearthly peace. The 
stars began to show themselvesand presently the two who waited 
found their faces turned upward to the sky and they both were 
speaking in whispers. 
``The stars look large here'' The Rat said. 
``Yes'' answered Marco. ``We are not as high as the Buddhist 
wasbut it seems like the top of the world.'' 
``There is a light on the side of the mountain yonder which is 
not a star'' The Rat whispered. 
``It is a light in a hut where the guides take the climbers to 
rest and to spend the night'' answered Marco. 
``It is so still'' The Rat whispered again after a silenceand 
Marco whispered back: 
``It is so still.'' 
They had eaten their meal of black bread and cheese after the 
setting of the sunand now they lay down on their backs and 
looked up until the first few stars had multiplied themselves 
into myriads. They began a little low talkbut the 
soundlessness was stronger than themselves. 
``How am I going to hold on to that second law?'' The Rat said 
restlessly. `` `Let pass through thy mind only the image thou 
wouldst see become a truth.' The things that are passing through 
my mind are not the things I want to come true. What if we don't 
find him --don't find the right oneI mean!'' 
``Lie still--still--and look up at the stars'' whispered Marco. 
``They give you a SURE feeling.'' 
There was something in the curious serenity of him which calmed 
even his aide-de-camp. The Rat lay still and looked--and 
looked--and thought. And what he thought of was the desire of 
his heart. The soundlessness enwrapped him and there was no 
world left. That there was a spark of light in the 
mountain-climbers' rest-hut was a thing forgotten. 
They were only two boysand they had begun their journey on the 
earliest train and had been walking about all day and thinking of 
great and anxious things. 
``It is so still'' The Rat whispered again at last. 
``It is so still'' whispered Marco. 
And the mountains rising behind each other and beside each other 
and beyond each other in the nightand also the myriads of stars 
which had so multiplied themselveslooking down knew that they 
were asleep--as sleep the human things which do not watch 
forever. 
``Some one is smoking'' Marco found himself saying in a dream. 
After which he awakened and found that the smoke was not part of 
a dream at all. It came from the pipe of a young man who had an 
alpenstock and who looked as if he had climbed to see the sun 
rise. He wore the clothes of a climber and a green hat with a 
tuft at the back. He looked down at the two boyssurprised. 
``Good day'' he said. ``Did you sleep here so that you could 
see the sun get up?'' 
``Yes'' answered Marco. 
``Were you cold?'' 
``We slept too soundly to know. And we brought our thick 
coats.'' 
``I slept half-way down the mountains'' said the smoker. ``I am 
a guide in these daysbut I have not been one long enough to 
miss a sunrise it is no work to reach. My father and brother 
think I am mad about such things. They would rather stay in 
their beds. Oh! he is awakeis he?'' turning toward The Rat
who had risen on one elbow and was staring at him. ``What is the 
matter? You look as if you were afraid of me.'' 
Marco did not wait for The Rat to recover his breath and speak. 
``I know why he looks at you so'' he answered for him. ``He is 
startled. Yesterday we went to a hair-dresser's shop down below 
thereand we saw a man who was almost exactly like you--only 
--'' he addedlooking up``his eyes were gray and yours are 
brown.'' 
``He was my twin brother'' said the guidepuffing at his pipe 
cheerfully. ``My father thought he could make hair-dressers of 
us bothand I tried it for four years. But I always wanted to 
be climbing the mountains and there were not holidays enough. So 
I cut my hairand washed the pomade out of itand broke away. 
I don't look like a hair-dresser nowdo I?'' 
He did not. Not at all. But Marco knew him. He was the man. 
There was no one on the mountain-top but themselvesand the sun 
was just showing a rim of gold above the farthest and highest 
giant's shoulders. One need not be afraid to do anythingsince 
there was no one to see or hear. Marco slipped the sketch out of 
the slit in his sleeve. He looked at it and he looked at the 
guideand then he showed it to him. 
``That is not your brother. It is you!'' he said. 
The man's face changed a little--more than any other face had 
changed when its owner had been spoken to. On a mountain-top as 
the sun rises one is not afraid. 
``The Lamp is lighted'' said Marco. ``The Lamp is lighted.'' 
``God be thanked!'' burst forth the man. And he took off his hat 
and bared his head. Then the rim behind the mountain's shoulder 
leaped forth into a golden torrent of splendor. 
And The Rat stood upresting his weight on his crutches in utter 
silenceand stared and stared. 
``That is three!'' said Marco. 
XXIII 
THE SILVER HORN 
During the next weekwhich they spent in journeying towards 
Viennathey gave the Sign to three different persons at places 
which were on the way. In a village across the frontier in 
Bavaria they found a giant of an old man sitting on a bench under 
a tree before his mountain ``Gasthaus'' or inn; and when the four 
words were utteredhe stood up and bared his head as the guide 
had done. When Marco gave the Sign in some quiet place to a man 
who was alonehe noticed that they all did this and said their 
``God be thanked'' devoutlyas if it were part of some religious 
ceremony. In a small town a few miles away he had to search some 
hours before he found a stalwart young shoemaker with bright 
red hair and a horseshoe-shaped scar on his forehead. He was not 
in his workshop when the boys first passed itbecauseas they 
found out laterhe had been climbing a mountain the day before
and had been detained in the descent because his companion had 
hurt himself. 
When Marco went in and asked him to measure him for a pair of 
shoeshe was quite friendly and told them all about it. 
``There are some good fellows who should not climb'' he said. 
``When they find themselves standing on a bit of rock jutting out 
over emptinesstheir heads begin to whirl round--and thenif 
they don't turn head over heels a few thousand feetit is 
because some comrade is near enough to drag them back. There can 
be no ceremony then and they sometimes get hurt--as my friend did 
yesterday.'' 
``Did you never get hurt yourself?'' The Rat asked. 
``When I was eight years old I did that'' said the young 
shoemakertouching the scar on his forehead. ``But it was not 
much. My father was a guide and took me with him. He wanted me 
to begin early. There is nothing like it--climbing. I shall be 
at it again. This won't do for me. I tried shoemaking because I 
was in love with a girl who wanted me to stay at home. She 
married another man. I am glad of it. Once a guidealways a 
guide.'' He knelt down to measure Marco's footand Marco bent a 
little forward. 
``The Lamp is lighted'' he said. 
There was no one in the shopbut the door was open and people 
were passing in the narrow street; so the shoemaker did not lift 
his red head. He went on measuring. 
``God be thanked!'' he saidin a low voice. ``Do you want these 
shoes reallyor did you only want me to take your measure?'' 
``I cannot wait until they are made'' Marco answered. ``I must 
go on.'' 
``Yesyou must go on'' answered the shoemaker. ``But I'll tell 
you what I'll do--I'll make them and keep them. Some great day 
might come when I shall show them to people and swagger about 
them.'' He glanced round cautiouslyand then endedstill 
bending over his measuring. ``They will be called the shoes of 
the Bearer of the Sign. And I shall say`He was only a lad. 
This was the size of his foot.' '' Then he stood up with a great 
smile. 
``There'll be climbing enough to be done now'' he said``and I 
look to see you again somewhere.'' 
When the boys went awaythey talked it over. 
``The hair-dresser didn't want to be a hair-dresserand the 
shoemaker didn't want to make shoes'' said The Rat. ``They both 
wanted to be mountain-climbers. There are mountains in Samavia 
and mountains on the way to it. You showed them to me on the 
map. 
``Yes; and secret messengers who can climb anywhereand cross 
dangerous placesand reconnoiter from points no one else can 
reachcan find out things and give signals other men cannot'' 
said Marco. 
``That's what I thought out'' The Rat answered. ``That was what 
he meant when he said`There will be climbing enough to be done 
now.' '' 
Strange were the places they went to and curiously unlike each 
other were the people to whom they carried their message. The 
most singular of all was an old woman who lived in so remote a 
place that the road which wound round and round the mountain
wound round it for miles and miles. It was not a bad road and it 
was an amazing one to traveldragged in a small cart by a mule
when one could be draggedand clambering slowly with rests 
between when one could not: the tree-covered precipices one 
looked downthe tossing whiteness of waterfallsor the green 
foaming of rushing streamsand the immensity of farm- and 
village- scattered plains spreading themselves to the feet of 
other mountains shutting them in were breath-taking beauties to 
look down onas the road mounted and wound round and round and 
higher and higher. 
``How can any one live higher than this?'' said The Rat as they 
sat on the thick moss by the wayside after the mule and cart had 
left them. ``Look at the bare crags looming up above there. Let 
us look at her again. Her picture looked as if she were a 
hundred years old.'' 
Marco took out his hidden sketch. It seemed surely one of the 
strangest things in the world that a creature as old as this one 
seemed could reach such a placeorhaving reached itcould 
ever descend to the world again to give aid to any person or 
thing. 
Her old face was crossed and recrossed with a thousand wrinkles. 
Her profile was splendid yet and she had been a beauty in her 
day. Her eyes were like an eagle's--and not an old eagle's. And 
she had a long neck which held her old head high. 
``How could she get here?'' exclaimed The Rat. 
``Those who sent us knowthough we don't'' said Marco. ``Will 
you sit here and rest while I go on further?'' 
``No!'' The Rat answered stubbornly. ``I didn't train myself to 
stay behind. But we shall come to bare-rock climbing soon and 
then I shall be obliged to stop'' and he said the last bitterly. 
He knew thatif Marco had come alonehe would have ridden in no 
cart but would have trudged upward and onward sturdily to the end 
of his journey. 
But they did not reach the cragsas they had thought must be 
inevitable. Suddenly half-way to the skyas it seemedthey 
came to a bend in the road and found themselves mounting into a 
new green world--an astonishing marvel of a worldwith green 
velvet slopes and soft meadows and thick woodlandand cows 
feeding in velvet pasturesand--as if it had been snowed down 
from the huge bare mountain crags which still soared above into 
heaven-- a mysteriousancienthuddled village whichbeing thus 
snowed downmight have caught among the rocks and rested there 
through all time. 
There it stood. There it huddled itself. And the monsters in 
the blue above it themselves looked down upon it as if it were an 
incredible thing--this ancientsteep-roofedhanging-balconied
crumbling cluster of human nestswhich seemed a thousand miles 
from the world. Marco and The Rat stood and stared at it. Then 
they sat down and stared at it. 
``How did it get here?'' The Rat cried. 
Marco shook his head. He certainly could see no explanation of 
its being there. Perhaps some of the oldest villages could tell 
stories of how its first chalets had gathered themselves 
together. 
An old peasant driving a cow came down a steep path. He looked 
with a dull curiosity at The Rat and his crutches; but when Marco 
advanced and spoke to him in Germanhe did not seem to 
understandbut shook his head saying something in a sort of 
dialect Marco did not know. 
``If they all speak like thatwe shall have to make signs when 
we want to ask anything'' The Rat said. ``What will she 
speak?'' 
``She will know the German for the Sign or we should not have 
been sent here'' answered Marco. ``Come on.'' 
They made their way to the villagewhich huddled itself together 
evidently with the object of keeping itself warm when through the 
winter months the snows strove to bury it and the winds roared 
down from the huge mountain crags and tried to tear it from among 
its rocks. The doors and windows were few and smalland 
glimpses of the inside of the houses showed earthen floors and 
dark rooms. It was plain that it was counted a more comfortable 
thing to live without light than to let in the cold. 
It was easy enough to reconnoiter. The few people they saw were 
evidently not surprised that strangers who discovered their 
unexpected existence should be curious and want to look at them 
and their houses. 
The boys wandered about as if they were casual explorerswho 
having reached the place by chance were interested in all they 
saw. They went into the little Gasthaus and got some black bread 
and sausage and some milk. The mountaineer owner was a brawny 
fellow who understood some German. He told them that few 
strangers knew of the village but that bold hunters and climbers 
came for sport. In the forests on the mountain sides were bears 
andin the high placeschamois. Now and againsome great 
gentlemen came with parties of the daring kind--very great 
gentlemen indeedhe saidshaking his head with pride. There 
was one who had castles in other mountainsbut he liked best to 
come here. Marco began to wonder if several strange things might 
not be true if great gentlemen sometimes climbed to the 
mysterious place. But he had not been sent to give the Sign to a 
great gentleman. He had been sent to give it to an old woman 
with eyes like an eagle which was young. 
He had a sketch in his sleevewith that of her faceof her 
steep-roofedblack-beamedbalconied house. If they walked 
about a littlethey would be sure to come upon it in this tiny 
place. Then he could go in and ask her for a drink of water. 
They roamed about for an hour after they left the Gasthaus. They 
went into the little church and looked at the graveyard and 
wondered if it was not buried out of all sight in the winter. 
After they had done thisthey sauntered out and walked through 
the huddled clusters of housesexamining each one as they drew 
near it and passed. 
``I see it!'' The Rat exclaimed at last. ``It is that very oldlooking 
one standing a little way from the rest. It is not as 
tumbled down as most of them. And there are some red flowers on 
the balcony.'' 
``Yes! That's it!'' said Marco. 
They walked up to the low black door andas he stopped on the 
thresholdMarco took off his cap. He did this becausesitting 
in the doorway on a low wooden chairthe oldold woman with the 
eagle eyes was sitting knitting. 
There was no one else in the room and no one anywhere within 
sight. When the oldold woman looked up at him with her young 
eagle's eyesholding her head high on her long neckMarco knew 
he need not ask for water or for anything else. 
``The Lamp is lighted'' he saidin his low but strong and clear 
young voice. 
She dropped her knitting upon her knees and gazed at him a moment 
in silence. She knew German it was clearfor it was in German 
she answered him. 
``God be thanked!'' she said. ``Come inyoung Bearer of the 
Signand bring your friend in with you. I live alone and not a 
soul is within hearing.'' 
She was a wonderful old woman. Neither Marco nor The Rat would 
live long enough to forget the hours they spent in her strange 
dark house. She kept them and made them spend the night with 
her. 
``It is quite safe'' she said. ``I live alone since my man fell 
into the crevasse and was killed because his rope broke when he 
was trying to save his comrade. So I have two rooms to spare and 
sometimes climbers are glad to sleep in them. Mine is a good 
warm house and I am well known in the village. You are very 
young'' she added shaking her head. ``You are very young. You 
must have good blood in your veins to be trusted with this.'' 
``I have my father's blood'' answered Marco. 
``You are like some one I once saw'' the old woman saidand her 
eagle eyes set themselves hard upon him. ``Tell me your name.'' 
There was no reason why he should not tell it to her. 
``It is Marco Loristan'' he said. 
``What! It is that!'' she cried outnot loud but low. 
To Marco's amazement she got up from her chair and stood before 
himshowing what a tall old woman she really was. There was a 
startledeven an agitatedlook in her face. And suddenly she 
actually made a sort of curtsey to him--bending her knee as 
peasants do when they pass a shrine. 
``It is that!'' she said again. ``And yet they dare let you go 
on a journey like this! That speaks for your courage and for 
theirs.'' 
But Marco did not know what she meant. Her strange obeisance 
made him feel awkward. He stood up because his training had told 
him that when a woman stands a man also rises. 
``The name speaks for the courage'' he said``because it is my 
father's.'' 
She watched him almost anxiously. 
``You do not even know!'' she breathed--and it was an exclamation 
and not a question. 
``I know what I have been told to do'' he answered. ``I do not 
ask anything else.'' 
``Who is that?'' she askedpointing to The Rat. 
``He is the friend my father sent with me'' said Marco smiling. 
``He called him my aide-de-camp. It was a sort of joke because 
we had played soldiers together.'' 
It seemed as if she were obliged to collect her thoughts. She 
stood with her hand at her mouthlooking down at the earth 
floor. 
``God guard you!'' she said at last. ``You are very--very 
young!'' 
``But all his years'' The Rat broke in``he has been in 
training for just this thing. He did not know it was training
but it was. A soldier who had been trained for thirteen years 
would know his work.'' 
He was so eager that he forgot she could not understand English. 
Marco translated what he said into German and added: ``What he 
says is true.'' 
She nodded her headstill with questioning and anxious eyes. 
``Yes. Yes'' she muttered. ``But you are very young.'' Then 
she asked in a hesitating way: 
``Will you not sit down until I do?'' 
``No'' answered Marco. ``I would not sit while my mother or 
grandmother stood.'' 
``Then I must sit--and forget'' she said. 
She passed her hand over her face as though she were sweeping 
away the sudden puzzled trouble in her expression. Then she sat 
downas if she had obliged herself to become again the old 
peasant she had been when they entered. 
``All the way up the mountain you wondered why an old woman 
should be given the Sign'' she said. ``You asked each other how 
she could be of use.'' 
Neither Marco nor The Rat said anything. 
``When I was young and fresh'' she went on. ``I went to a 
castle over the frontier to be foster-mother to a child who was 
born a great noble--one who was near the throne. He loved me and 
I loved him. He was a strong child and he grew up a great hunter 
and climber. When he was not ten years oldmy man taught him to 
climb. He always loved these mountains better than his own. He 
comes to see me as if he were only a young mountaineer. He 
sleeps in the room there'' with a gesture over her shoulder into 
the darkness. ``He has great power andif he chooses to do a 
thinghe will do it--just as he will attack the biggest bear or 
climb the most dangerous peak. He is one who can bring things 
about. It is very safe to talk in this room.'' 
Then all was quite clear. Marco and The Rat understood. 
No more was said about the Sign. It had been given and that was 
enough. The old woman told them that they must sleep in one of 
her bedrooms. The next morning one of her neighbors was going 
down to the valley with a cart and he would help them on their 
way. The Rat knew that she was thinking of his crutches and he 
became restless. 
``Tell her'' he said to Marco``how I have trained myself until 
I can do what any one else can. And tell her I am growing 
stronger every day. Tell her I'll show her what I can do. Your 
father wouldn't have let me come as your aide if I hadn't proved 
to him that I wasn't a cripple. Tell her. She thinks I'm no 
use.'' 
Marco explained and the old woman listened attentively. When The 
Rat got up and swung himself about up and down the steep path 
near her house she seemed relieved. His extraordinary dexterity 
and firm swiftness evidently amazed her and gave her a confidence 
she had not felt at first. 
``If he has taught himself to be like that just for love of your 
fatherhe will go to the end'' she said. ``It is more than one 
could believethat a pair of crutches could do such things.'' 
The Rat was pacified and could afterwards give himself up to 
watching her as closely as he wished to. He was soon ``working 
out'' certain things in his mind. What he watched was her way of 
watching Marco. It was as if she were fascinated and could not 
keep her eyes from him. She told them stories about the 
mountains and the strangers who came to climb with guides or to 
hunt. She told them about the stormswhich sometimes seemed 
about to put an end to the little world among the crags. She 
described the winter when the snow buried them and the strong 
ones were forced to dig out the weak and some lived for days 
under the masses of soft whitenessglad to keep their cows or 
goats in their rooms that they might share the warmth of their 
bodies. The villages were forced to be good neighbors to each 
otherfor the man who was not ready to dig out a hidden chimney 
or buried door to-day might be left to freeze and starve in his 
snow tomb next week. Through the worst part of the winter no 
creature from the world below could make way to them to find out 
whether they were all dead or alive. 
While she talkedshe watched Marco as if she were always asking 
herself some question about him. The Rat was sure that she liked 
him and greatly admired his strong body and good looks. It was 
not necessary for him to carry himself slouchingly in her 
presence and he looked glowing and noble. There was a sort of 
reverence in her manner when she spoke to him. She reminded him 
of Lazarus more than once. When she gave them their evening 
mealshe insisted on waiting on him with a certain respectful 
ceremony. She would not sit at table with himand The Rat began 
to realize that she felt that he himself should be standing to 
serve him. 
``She thinks I ought to stand behind your chair as Lazarus stands 
behind your father's'' he said to Marco. ``Perhaps an aide 
ought to do it. Shall I? I believe it would please her.'' 
``A Bearer of the Sign is not a royal person'' answered Marco. 
``My father would not like it--and I should not. We are only two 
boys.'' 
It was very wonderful whenafter their supper was overthey all 
three sat together before the fire. 
The red glow of the bed of wood-coal and the orange yellow of the 
flame from the big logs filled the room with warm lightwhich 
made a mellow background for the figure of the old woman as she 
sat in her low chair and told them more and more enthralling 
stories. 
Her eagle eyes glowed and her long neck held her head splendidly 
high as she described great feats of courage and endurance or 
almost superhuman daring in aiding those in awesome periland
when she glowed most in the tellingthey always knew that the 
hero of the adventure had been her foster-child who was the baby 
born a great noble and near the throne. To herhe was the most 
splendid and adorable of human beings. Almost an emperorbut so 
warm and tender of heart that he never forgot the long- past days 
when she had held him on her knee and told him tales of chamoisand 
bear-huntingand of the mountain-tops in mid- winter. He 
was her sun-god. 
``Yes! Yes!'' she said. `` `Good Mother' he calls me. And I 
bake him a cake on the hearthas I did when he was ten years old 
and my man was teaching him to climb. And when he chooses that a 
thing shall be done--done it is! He is a great lord.'' 
The flames had died down and only the big bed of red coal made 
the room glowand they were thinking of going to bed when the 
old woman started very suddenlyturning her head as if to 
listen. 
Marco and The Rat heard nothingbut they saw that she did and 
they sat so still that each held his breath. So there was utter 
stillness for a few moments. Utter stillness. 
Then they did hear something--a clear silver soundpiercing the 
pure mountain air. 
The old woman sprang upright with the fire of delight in her 
eyes. 
``It is his silver horn!'' she cried out striking her hands 
together. ``It is his own call to me when he is coming. He has 
been hunting somewhere and wants to sleep in his good bed here. 
Help me to put on more faggots'' to The Rat``so that he will 
see the flame of them through the open door as he comes.'' 
``Shall we be in the way?'' said Marco. ``We can go at once.'' 
She was going towards the door to open it and she stopped a 
moment and turned. 
``Nono!'' she said. ``He must see your face. He will want to 
see it. I want him to see--how young you are.'' 
She threw the door wide open and they heard the silver horn send 
out its gay call again. The brushwood and faggots The Rat had 
thrown on the coals crackled and sparkled and roared into fine 
flameswhich cast their light into the road and threw out in 
fine relief the old figure which stood on the threshold and 
looked so tall. 
And in but a few minutes her great lord came to her. And in his 
green hunting-suit with its green hat and eagle's feather he was 
as splendid as she had said he was. He was big and royallooking 
and laughing and he bent and kissed her as if he had been 
her own son. 
``Yesgood Mother'' they heard him say. ``I want my warm bed 
and one of your good suppers. I sent the others to the 
Gasthaus.'' 
He came into the redly glowing room and his head almost touched 
the blackened rafters. Then he saw the two boys. 
``Who are thesegood Mother?'' he asked. 
She lifted his hand and kissed it. 
``They are the Bearers of the Sign'' she said rather softly. `` 
`The Lamp is lighted.' '' 
Then his whole look changed. His laughing face became quite 
grave and for a moment looked even anxious. Marco knew it was 
because he was startled to find them only boys. He made a step 
forward to look at them more closely. 
``The Lamp is lighted! And you two bear the Sign!'' he 
exclaimed. Marco stood out in the fire glow that he might see 
him well. He saluted with respect. 
``My name is Marco LoristanHighness'' he said. ``And my 
father sent me.'' 
The change which came upon his face then was even greater than at 
first. For a secondMarco even felt that there was a flash of 
alarm in it. But almost at once that passed. 
``Loristan is a great man and a great patriot'' he said. ``If 
he sent youit is because he knows you are the one safe 
messenger. He has worked too long for Samavia not to know what 
he does.'' 
Marco saluted again. He knew what it was right to say next. 
``If we have your Highness's permission to retire'' he said
``we will leave you and go to bed. We go down the mountain at 
sunrise.'' 
``Where next?'' asked the hunterlooking at him with curious 
intentness. 
``To ViennaHighness'' Marco answered. 
His questioner held out his handstill with the intent interest 
in his eyes. 
``Good nightfine lad'' he said. ``Samavia has need to vaunt 
itself on its Sign-bearer. God go with you.'' 
He stood and watched him as he went toward the room in which he 
and his aide-de-camp were to sleep. The Rat followed him 
closely. At the little back door the oldold woman stood
having opened it for them. As Marco passed and bade her good 
nighthe saw that she again made the strange obeisancebending 
the knee as he went by. 
``HOW SHALL WE FIND HIM?'' 
In Vienna they came upon a pageant. In celebration of a 
century-past victory the Emperor drove in state and ceremony to 
attend at the great cathedral and to do honor to the ancient 
banners and laurel-wreathed statue of a long-dead soldier-prince. 
The broad pavements of the huge chief thoroughfare were crowded 
with a cheering populace watching the martial pomp and splendor 
as it passed by with marching feetprancing horsesand glitter 
of scabbard and chainwhich all seemed somehow part of music in 
triumphant bursts. 
The Rat was enormously thrilled by the magnificence of the 
imperial place. Its immense spacesthe squares and gardens
reigned over by statues of emperorsand warriorsand queens 
made him feel that all things on earth were possible. The 
palaces and stately piles of architecturewhose surmounting 
equestrian bronzes ramped high in the air clear cut and beautiful 
against the skyseemed to sweep out of his world all atmosphere 
but that of splendid cities down whose broad avenues emperors 
rode with waving bannerstrampingjangling soldiery before and 
behindand golden trumpets blaring forth. It seemed as if it 
must always be like this--that lances and cavalry and emperors 
would never cease to ride by. ``I should like to stay here a 
long time'' he said almost as if he were in a dream. ``I should 
like to see it all.'' 
He leaned on his crutches in the crowd and watched the glitter of 
the passing pageant. Now and then he glanced at Marcowho 
watched also with a steady eye whichThe Rat sawnothing would 
escape: How absorbed he always was in the Game! How impossible 
it was for him to forget it or to remember it only as a boy 
would! Often it seemed that he was not a boy at all. And the 
GameThe Rat knew in these dayswas a game no more but a thing 
of deep and deadly earnest--a thing which touched kings and 
thronesand concerned the ruling and swaying of great countries. 
And they--two lads pushed about by the crowd as they stood and 
stared at the soldiers--carried with them that which was even now 
lighting the Lamp. The blood in The Rat's veins ran quickly and 
made him feel hot as he remembered certain thoughts which had 
forced themselves into his mind during the past weeks. As his 
brain had the trick of ``working things out'' it hadduring the 
last fortnight at leastbeen following a wonderful even if 
rather fantastic and feverish fancy. A mere trifle had set it at 
workbutits labor once begunthings which might have once 
seemed to be trifles appeared so no longer. When Marco was 
asleepThe Rat lay awake through thrilled and sometimes almost 
breathless midnight hourslooking backward and recalling every 
detail of their lives since they had known each other. Sometimes 
it seemed to him that almost everything he remembered--the Game 
from first to last above all--had pointed to but one thing. And 
then again he would all at once feel that he was a fool and had 
better keep his head steady. Marcohe knewhad no wild 
fancies. He had learned too much and his mind was too well 
balanced. He did not try to ``work out things.'' He only 
thought of what he was under orders to do. 
``But'' said The Rat more than once in these midnight hours
``if it ever comes to a draw whether he is to be saved or I am
he is the one that must come to no harm. Killing can't take 
long-- and his father sent me with him.'' 
This thought passed through his mind as the tramping feet went 
by. As a sudden splendid burst of approaching music broke upon 
his eara queer look twisted his face. He realized the contrast 
between this day and that first morning behind the churchyard
when he had sat on his platform among the Squad and looked up and 
saw Marco in the arch at the end of the passage. And because he 
had been good-looking and had held himself so wellhe had thrown 
a stone at him. Yes--blind gutter-bred fool that he'd been:--his 
first greeting to Marco had been a stonejust because he was 
what he was. As they stood here in the crowd in this far-off 
foreign cityit did not seem as if it could be true that it was 
he who had done it. 
He managed to work himself closer to Marco's side. ``Isn't it 
splendid?'' he said``I wish I was an emperor myself. I'd have 
these fellows out like this every day.'' He said it only because 
he wanted to say somethingto speakas a reason for getting 
closer to him. He wanted to be near enough to touch him and feel 
that they were really together and that the whole thing was not a 
sort of magnificent dream from which he might awaken to find 
himself lying on his heap of rags in his corner of the room in 
Bone Court. 
The crowd swayed forward in its eagerness to see the principal 
feature of the pageant--the Emperor in his carriage. The Rat 
swayed forward with the rest to look as it passed. 
A handsome white-haired and mustached personage in splendid 
uniform decorated with jeweled orders and with a cascade of 
emerald-green plumes nodding in his military hat gravely saluted 
the shouting people on either side. By him sat a man uniformed
decoratedand emerald-plumed alsobut many years younger. 
Marco's arm touched The Rat's almost at the same moment that his 
own touched Marco. Under the nodding plumes each saw the rather 
tired and cynical pale facea sketch of which was hidden in the 
slit in Marco's sleeve. 
``Is the one who sits with the Emperor an Archduke?'' Marco asked 
the man nearest to him in the crowd. The man answered amiably 
enough. Nohe was notbut he was a certain Princea 
descendant of the one who was the hero of the day. He was a 
great favorite of the Emperor's and was also a great personage
whose palace contained pictures celebrated throughout Europe. 
``He pretends it is only pictures he cares for'' he went on
shrugging his shoulders and speaking to his wifewho had begun 
to listen``but he is a clever onewho amuses himself with 
things he professes not to concern himself about--big things. 
It's his way to look boredand interested in nothingbut it's 
said he's a wizard for knowing dangerous secrets.'' 
``Does he live at the Hofburg with the Emperor?'' asked the 
womancraning her neck to look after the imperial carriage. 
``Nobut he's often there. The Emperor is lonely and bored too
no doubtand this one has ways of making him forget his 
troubles. It's been told me that now and then the two dress 
themselves roughlylike common menand go out into the city to 
see what it's like to rub shoulders with the rest of the world. 
I daresay it's true. I should like to try it myself once in a 
whileif I had to sit on a throne and wear a crown.'' 
The two boys followed the celebration to its end. They managed 
to get near enough to see the entrance to the church where the 
service was held and to get a view of the ceremonies at the 
banner-draped and laurel-wreathed statue. They saw the man with 
the pale face several timesbut he was always so enclosed that 
it was not possible to get within yards of him. It happened 
oncehoweverthat he looked through a temporary break in the 
crowding 
people and saw a dark strong-featured and remarkably intent boy's 
facewhose vivid scrutiny of him caught his eye. There was 
something in the fixedness of its attention which caused him to 
look at it curiously for a few secondsand Marco met his gaze 
squarely. 
``Look at me! Look at me!'' the boy was saying to him mentally. 
``I have a message for you. A message!'' 
The tired eyes in the pale face rested on him with a certain 
growing light of interest and curiositybut the crowding people 
moved and the temporary break closed upso that the two could 
see each other no more. Marco and The Rat were pushed backward 
by those taller and stronger than themselves until they were on 
the outskirts of the crowd. 
``Let us go to the Hofburg'' said Marco. ``They will come back 
thereand we shall see him again even if we can't get near.'' 
To the Hofburg they made their way through the less crowded 
streetsand there they waited as near to the great palace as 
they could get. They were there whenthe ceremonies at an end
the imperial carriages returnedbutthough they saw their man 
againthey were at some distance from him and he did not see 
them. 
Then followed four singular days. They were singular days 
because they were full of tantalizing incidents. Nothing seemed 
easier than to hear talk ofand see the Emperor's favoritebut 
nothing was more impossible than to get near to him. He seemed 
rather a favorite with the populaceand the common people of the 
shopkeeping or laboring classes were given to talking freely of 
him--of where he was going and what he was doing. To-night he 
would be sure to be at this great house or thatat this ball or 
that banquet. There was no difficulty in discovering that he 
would be sure to go to the operaor the theatreor to drive to 
Schonbrunn with his imperial master. Marco and The Rat heard 
casual speech of him again and againand from one part of the 
city to the other they followed and waited for him. But it was 
like chasing a will-o'-the-wisp. He was evidently too brilliant 
and important a person to be allowed to move about alone. There 
were always people with him who seemed absorbed in his languid 
cynical talk. Marco thought that he never seemed to care much 
for his companionsthough they on their part always seemed 
highly entertained by what he was saying. It was noticeable that 
they laughed a great dealthough he himself scarcely even 
smiled. 
``He's one of those chaps with the trick of saying witty things 
as if he didn't see the fun in them himself'' The Rat summed him 
up. ``Chaps like that are always cleverer than the other kind.'' 
``He's too high in favor and too rich not to be followed about'' 
they heard a man in a shop say one day``but he gets tired of 
it. Sometimeswhen he's too bored to stand it any longerhe 
gives it out that he's gone into the mountains somewhereand all 
the time he's shut up alone with his pictures in his own 
palace.'' 
That very night The Rat came in to their attic looking pale and 
disappointed. He had been out to buy some food after a long and 
arduous day in which they had covered much groundhad seen their 
man three timesand each time under circumstances which made him 
more inaccessible than ever. They had come back to their poor 
quarters both tired and ravenously hungry. 
The Rat threw his purchase on to the table and himself into a 
chair. 
``He's gone to Budapest'' he said. ``NOW how shall we find 
him?'' 
Marco was rather pale alsoand for a moment he looked paler. 
The day had been a hard oneand in their haste to reach places 
at a long distance from each other they had forgotten their need 
of food. 
They sat silent for a few moments because there seemed to be 
nothing to say. ``We are too tired and hungry to be able to 
think well'' Marco said at last. ``Let us eat our supper and 
then go to sleep. Until we've had a restwe must `let go.' '' 
``Yes. There's no good in talking when you're tired'' The Rat 
answered a trifle gloomily. ``You don't reason straight. We 
must `let go.' '' 
Their meal was simple but they ate well and without words. 
Even when they had finished and undressed for the nightthey 
said very little. 
``Where do our thoughts go when we are asleep'' The Rat inquired 
casually after he was stretched out in the darkness. ``They must 
go somewhere. Let's send them to find out what to do next.'' 
``It's not as still as it was on the Gaisberg. You can hear the 
city roaring'' said Marco drowsily from his dark corner. ``We 
must make a ledge--for ourselves.'' 
Sleep made it for them--deeprestfulhealthy sleep. If they 
had been more resentful of their ill luck and lost laborit 
would have come less easily and have been less natural. In their 
talks of strange things they had learned that one great secret of 
strength and unflagging courage is to know how to ``let go''--to 
cease thinking over an anxiety until the right moment comes. It 
was their habit to ``let go'' for hours sometimesand wander 
about looking at places and things--galleriesmuseumspalaces
giving themselves up with boyish pleasure and eagerness to all 
they saw. Marco was too intimate with the things worth seeing
and The Rat too curious and feverishly wide-awake to allow of 
their missing much. 
The Rat's image of the world had grown until it seemed to know no 
boundaries which could hold its wealth of wonders. He wanted to 
go on and on and see them all. 
When Marco opened his eyes in the morninghe found The Rat lying 
looking at him. Then they both sat up in bed at the same time. 
``I believe we are both thinking the same thing'' Marco said. 
They frequently discovered that they were thinking the same 
things. 
``So do I'' answered The Rat. ``It shows how tired we were that 
we didn't think of it last night.'' 
``Yeswe are thinking the same thing'' said Marco. ``We have 
both remembered what we heard about his shutting himself up alone 
with his pictures and making people believe he had gone away.'' 
``He's in his palace now'' The Rat announced. 
``Do you feel sure of thattoo?'' asked Marco. ``Did you wake 
up and feel sure of it the first thing?'' 
``Yes'' answered The Rat. ``As sure as if I'd heard him say it 
himself.'' 
``So did I'' said Marco. 
``That's what our thoughts brought back to us'' said The Rat
``when we `let go' and sent them off last night.'' He sat up 
hugging his knees and looking straight before him for some time 
after thisand Marco did not interrupt his meditations. 
The day was a brilliant oneandthough their attic had only one 
windowthe sun shone in through it as they ate their breakfast. 
After itthey leaned on the window's ledge and talked about the 
Prince's garden. They talked about it because it was a place 
open to the public and they had walked round it more than once. 
The palacewhich was not a large onestood in the midst of it. 
The Prince was good-natured enough to allow quiet and 
well-behaved people to saunter through. It was not a fashionable 
promenade but a pleasant retreat for people who sometimes took 
their work or books and sat on the seats placed here and there 
among the shrubs and flowers. 
``When we were there the first timeI noticed two things'' 
Marco said. ``There is a stone balcony which juts out from the 
side of the palace which looks on the Fountain Garden. That day 
there were chairs on it as if the Prince and his visitors 
sometimes sat there. Near itthere was a very large evergreen 
shrub and I saw that there was a hollow place inside it. If some 
one wanted to stay in the gardens all night to watch the windows 
when they were lighted and see if any one came out alone upon the 
balconyhe could hide himself in the hollow place and stay there 
until the morning.'' 
``Is there room for two inside the shrub?'' The Rat asked. 
``No. I must go alone'' said Marco. 
A VOICE IN THE NIGHT 
Late that afternoon there wandered about the gardens two quiet
inconspicuousrather poorly dressed boys. They looked at the 
palacethe shrubsand the flower-bedsas strangers usually 
didand they sat on the seats and talked as people were 
accustomed to seeing boys talk together. It was a sunny day and 
exceptionally warmand there were more saunterers and sitters 
than usualwhich was perhaps the reason why the portier at the 
entrance gates gave such slight notice to the pair that he did 
not observe thatthough two boys came inonly one went out. He 
did notin factrememberwhen he saw The Rat swing by on his 
crutches at closing-timethat he had entered in company with a 
dark-haired lad who walked without any aid. It happened that
when The Rat passed outthe portier at the entrance was much 
interested in the aspect of the skywhich was curiously 
threatening. There had been heavy clouds hanging about all day 
and now and then blotting out the sunshine entirelybut the sun 
had refused to retire altogether. Just nowhoweverthe clouds 
had piled themselves in thunderouspurplish mountainsand the 
sun had been forced to set behind them. 
``It's been a sort of battle since morning'' the portier said. 
``There will be some crashes and cataracts to-night.'' That was 
what The Rat had thought when they had sat in the Fountain Garden 
on a seat which gave them a good view of the balcony and the big 
evergreen shrubwhich they knew had the hollow in the middle
though its circumference was so imposing. ``If there should be a 
big stormthe evergreen will not save you muchthough it may 
keep off the worst'' The Rat said. ``I wish there was room for 
two.'' 
He would have wished there was room for two if he had seen Marco 
marching to the stake. As the gardens emptiedthe boys rose and 
walked round once moreas if on their way out. By the time they 
had sauntered toward the big evergreennobody was in the 
Fountain Gardenand the last loiterers were moving toward the 
arched stone entrance to the streets. 
When they drew near one side of the evergreenthe two were 
together. When The Rat swung out on the other side of ithe was 
alone! No one noticed that anything had happened; no one looked 
back. So The Rat swung down the walks and round the flower-beds 
and passed into the street. And the portier looked at the sky 
and made his remark about the ``crashes'' and ``cataracts.'' 
As the darkness came onthe hollow in the shrub seemed a very 
safe place. It was not in the least likely that any one would 
enter the closed gardens; and if by rare chance some servant 
passed throughhe would not be in search of people who wished to 
watch all night in the middle of an evergreen instead of going to 
bed and to sleep. The hollow was well inclosed with greenery
and there was room to sit down when one was tired of standing. 
Marco stood for a long time becauseby doing sohe could see 
plainly the windows opening on the balcony if he gently pushed 
aside some flexible young boughs. He had managed to discover in 
his first visit to the gardens that the windows overlooking the 
Fountain Garden were those which belonged to the Prince's own 
suite of rooms. Those which opened on to the balcony lighted his 
favorite apartmentwhich contained his best-loved books and 
pictures and in which he spent most of his secluded leisure 
hours. 
Marco watched these windows anxiously. If the Prince had not 
gone to Budapest--if he were really only in retreatand hiding 
from his gay world among his treasures--he would be living in 
his favorite rooms and lights would show themselves. And if 
there were lightshe might pass before a window becausesince 
he was inclosed in his gardenhe need not fear being seen. The 
twilight deepened into darkness andbecause of the heavy clouds
it was very dense. Faint gleams showed themselves in the lower 
part of the palacebut none was lighted in the windows Marco 
watched. He waited so long that it became evident that none was 
to be lighted at all. At last he loosed his hold on the young 
boughs andafter standing a few moments in thoughtsat down 
upon the earth in the midst of his embowered tent. The Prince 
was not in his retreat; he was probably not in Viennaand the 
rumor of his journey to Budapest had no doubt been true. So much 
time lost through making a mistake--but it was best to have made 
the venture. Not to have made it would have been to lose a 
chance. The entrance was closed for the night and there was no 
getting out of the gardens until they were opened for the next 
day. He must stay in his hiding- place until the time when 
people began to come and bring their books and knitting and sit 
on the seats. Then he could stroll out without attracting 
attention. But he had the night before him to spend as best he 
could. That would not matter at all. He could tuck his cap 
under his head and go to sleep on the ground. He could command 
himself to waken once every half-hour and look for the lights. 
He would not go to sleep until it was long past midnight--so long 
past that there would not be one chance in a hundred that 
anything could happen. But the clouds which made the night so 
dark were giving forth low rumbling growls. At intervals a 
threatening gleam of light shot across them and a sudden swish of 
wind rushed through the trees in the garden. This happened 
several timesand then Marco began to hear the patter of 
raindrops. They were heavy and big dropsbut few at firstand 
then there was a new and more powerful rush of winda jagged 
dart of light in the skyand a tremendous crash. After that the 
clouds tore themselves open and poured forth their contents in 
floods. After the protracted struggle of the day it all seemed 
to happen at onceas if a horde of huge lions had at one moment 
been let loose: flame after flame of lightningroar and crash 
and sharp reports of thundershrieks of hurricane windtorrents 
of rainas if some tidal-wave of the skies had gathered and 
rushed and burst upon the earth. It was such a storm as people 
remember for a lifetime and which in few lifetimes is seen at 
all. 
Marco stood still in the midst of the rage and floodingblinding 
roar of it. After the first few minutes he knew he could do 
nothing to shield himself. Down the garden paths he heard 
cataracts rushing. He held his cap pressed against his eyes 
because he seemed to stand in the midst of darting flames. The 
crashescannon reports and thunderingsand the jagged streams 
of light came so close to one another that he seemed deafened as 
well as blinded. He wondered if he should ever be able to hear 
human voices again when it was over. That he was drenched to the 
skin and that the water poured from his clothes as if he were 
himself a cataract was so small a detail that he was scarcely 
aware of it. He stood stillbracing his bodyand waited. If 
he had been a Samavian soldier in the trenches and such a storm 
had broken upon him and his comradesthey could only have braced 
themselves and waited. This was what he found himself thinking 
when the tumult and downpour were at their worst. There were men 
who had waited in the midst of a rain of bullets. 
It was not long after this thought had come to him that there 
occurred the first temporary lull in the storm. Its fury perhaps 
reached its height and broke at that moment. A yellow flame had 
torn its jagged way across the heavensand an earth-rending 
crash had thundered itself into rumblings which actually died 
away before breaking forth again. Marco took his cap from his 
eyes and drew a long breath. He drew two long breaths. It was 
as he began drawing a third and realizing the strange feeling of 
the almost stillness about him that he heard a new kind of sound 
at the side of the garden nearest his hiding-place. It sounded 
like the creak of a door opening somewhere in the wall behind the 
laurel hedge. Some one was coming into the garden by a private 
entrance. He pushed aside the young boughs again and tried to 
seebut the darkness was too dense. Yet he could hear if the 
thunder would not break again. There was the sound of feet on 
the wet gravelthe footsteps of more than one person coming 
toward where he stoodbut not as if afraid of being heard; 
merely as if they were at liberty to come in by what entrance 
they chose. Marco remained very still. A sudden hope gave him a 
shock of joy. If the man with the tired face chose to hide 
himself from his acquaintanceshe might choose to go in and out 
by a private entrance. The footsteps drew nearcrushing the wet 
gravelpassed byand seemed to pause somewhere near the 
balcony; and them flame lit up the sky again and the thunder 
burst forth once more. 
But this was its last greal peal. The storm was at an end. Only 
fainter and fainter rumblings and mutterings and paler and paler 
darts followed. Even they were soon overand the cataracts in 
the paths had rushed themselves silent. But the darkness was 
still deep. 
It was deep to blackness in the hollow of the evergreen. Marco 
stood in itstreaming with rainbut feeling nothing because he 
was full of thought. He pushed aside his greenery and kept his 
eyes on the place in the blackness where the windows must be
though he could not see them. It seemed that he waited a long 
timebut he knew it only seemed so really. He began to breathe 
quickly because he was waiting for something. 
Suddenly he saw exactly where the windows were--because they were 
all lighted! 
His feeling of relief was greatbut it did not last very long. 
It was true that something had been gained in the certainty that 
his man had not left Vienna. But what next? It would not be so 
easy to follow him if he chose only to go out secretly at night. 
What next? To spend the rest of the night watching a lighted 
window was not enough. To-morrow night it might not be lighted. 
But he kept his gaze fixed upon it. He tried to fix all his will 
and thought-power on the person inside the room. Perhaps he 
could reach him and make him listeneven though he would not 
know that any one was speaking to him. He knew that thoughts 
were strong things. If angry thoughts in one man's mind will 
create anger in the mind of anotherwhy should not sane messages 
cross the line? 
``I must speak to you. I must speak to you!'' he found himself 
saying in a low intense voice. ``I am outside here waiting. 
Listen! I must speak to you!'' 
He said it many times and kept his eyes fixed upon the window 
which opened on to the balcony. Once he saw a man's figure cross 
the roombut he could not be sure who it was. The last distant 
rumblings of thunder had died away and the clouds were breaking. 
It was not long before the dark mountainous billows broke apart
and a brilliant full moon showed herself sailing in the rift
suddenly flooding everything with light. Parts of the garden 
were silver whiteand the tree shadows were like black velvet. 
A silvery lance pierced even into the hollow of Marco's evergreen 
and struck across his face. 
Perhaps it was this sudden change which attracted the attention 
of those inside the balconied room. A man's figure appeared at 
the long windows. Marco saw now that it was the Prince. He 
opened the windows and stepped out on to the balcony. 
``It is all over'' he said quietly. And he stood with his face 
liftedlooking at the great white sailing moon. 
He stood very still and seemed for the moment to forget the world 
and himself. It was a wonderfultriumphant queen of a moon. 
But something brought him back to earth. A lowbut strong and 
clearboy-voice came up to him from the garden path below. 
``The Lamp is lighted. The Lamp is lighted'' it saidand the 
words sounded almost as if some one were uttering a prayer. They 
seemed to call to himto arrest himto draw him. 
He stood still a few seconds in dead silence. Then he bent over 
the balustrade. The moonlight had not broken the darkness below. 
``That is a boy's voice'' he said in a low tone``but I cannot 
see who is speaking.'' 
``Yesit is a boy's voice'' it answeredin a way which somehow 
moved himbecause it was so ardent. ``It is the son of Stefan 
Loristan. The Lamp is lighted.'' 
``Wait. I am coming down to you'' the Prince said. 
In a few minutes Marco heard a door open gently not far from 
where he stood. Then the man he had been following so many days 
appeared at his side. 
``How long have you been here?'' he asked. 
``Before the gates closed. I hid myself in the hollow of the big 
shrub thereHighness'' Marco answered. 
``Then you were out in the storm?'' 
``YesHighness.'' 
The Prince put his hand on the boy's shoulder. ``I cannot see 
you --but it is best to stand in the shadow. You are drenched to 
the skin.'' 
``I have been able to give your Highness--the Sign'' Marco 
whispered. ``A storm is nothing.'' 
There was a silence. Marco knew that his companion was pausing 
to turn something over in his mind. 
``So-o?'' he said slowlyat length. ``The Lamp is lightedAnd 
YOU are sent to bear the Sign.'' Something in his voice made 
Marco feel that he was smiling. 
``What a race you are! What a race--you Samavian Loristans!'' 
He paused as if to think the thing over again. 
``I want to see your face'' he said next. ``Here is a tree with 
a shaft of moonlight striking through the branches. Let us step 
aside and stand under it.'' 
Marco did as he was told. The shaft of moonlight fell upon his 
uplifted face and showed its young strength and darknessquite 
splendid for the moment in a triumphant glow of joy in obstacles 
overcome. Raindrops hung on his hairbut he did not look 
draggledonly very wet and picturesque. He had reached his man. 
He had given the Sign. 
The Prince looked him over with interested curiosity. 
``Yes'' he said in his coolrather dragging voice. ``You are 
the son of Stefan Loristan. Also you must be taken care of. You 
must come with me. I have trained my household to remain in its 
own quarters until I require its service. I have attached to my 
own apartments a good safe little room where I sometimes keep 
people. 
You can dry your clothes and sleep there. When the gardens are 
opened againthe rest will be easy.'' 
But though he stepped out from under the trees and began to move 
towards the palace in the shadowMarco noticed that he moved 
hesitatinglyas if he had not quite decided what he should do. 
He stopped rather suddenly and turned again to Marcowho was 
following him. 
``There is some one in the room I just now left'' he said``an 
old man--whom it might interest to see you. It might also be a 
good thing for him to feel interest in you. I choose that he 
shall see you --as you are.'' 
``I am at your commandHighness'' Marco answered. He knew his 
companion was smiling again. 
``You have been in training for more centuries than you know'' 
he said; ``and your father has prepared you to encounter the 
unexpected without surprise.'' 
They passed under the balcony and paused at a low stone doorway 
hidden behind shrubs. The door was a beautiful oneMarco saw 
when it was openedand the corridor disclosed was beautiful 
alsothough it had an air of quiet and aloofness which was not 
so much secret as private. A perfect though narrow staircase 
mounted from it to the next floor. After ascending itthe 
Prince led the way through a short corridor and stopped at the 
door at the end of it. ``We are going in here'' he said. 
It was a wonderful room--the one which opened on to the balcony. 
Each piece of furniture in itthe hangingsthe tapestriesand 
pictures on the wall were all such as might well have found 
themselves adorning a museum. Marco remembered the common report 
of his escort's favorite amusement of collecting wonders and 
furnishing his house with the things others exhibited only as 
marvels of art and handicraft. The place was rich and mellow 
with exquisitely chosen beauties. 
In a massive chair upon the heart sat a figure with bent head. 
It was a tall old man with white hair and moustache. His elbows 
rested upon the arm of his chair and he leaned his forehead on 
his hand as if he were weary. 
Marco's companion crossed the room and stood beside himspeaking 
in a lowered voice. Marco could not at first hear what he said. 
He himself stood quite stillwaiting. The white-haired man 
lifted his head and listened. It seemed as though almost at once 
he was singularly interested. The lowered voice was slightly 
raised at last and Marco heard the last two sentences: 
``The only son of Stefan Loristan. Look at him.'' 
The old man in the chair turned slowly and lookedsteadilyand 
with questioning curiosity touched with grave surprise. He had 
keen and clear blue eyes. 
Then Marcostill erect and silentwaited again. The Prince had 
merely said to him``an old man whom it might interest to see 
you.'' He had plainly intended thatwhatsoever happenedhe 
must make no outward sign of seeing more than he had been told he 
would see --``an old man.'' It was for him to show no 
astonishment or recognition. He had been brought here not to see 
but to be seen. The power of remaining still under scrutiny
which The Rat had often envied himstood now in good stead 
because he had seen the white head and tall form not many days 
beforesurmounted by brilliant emerald plumeshung with jeweled 
decorationsin the royal carriageescorted by bannersand 
helmetsand following troops whose tramping feet kept time to 
bursts of military music while the populace bared their heads and 
cheered. 
``He is like his father'' this personage said to the Prince. 
``But if any one but Loristan had sent him--His looks please 
me.'' Then suddenly to Marco``You were waiting outside while 
the storm was going on?'' 
``Yessir'' Marco answered. 
Then the two exchanged some words still in the lowered voice. 
``You read the news as you made your journey?'' he was asked. 
``You know how Samavia stands?'' 
``She does not stand'' said Marco. ``The Iarovitch and the 
Maranovitch have fought as hyenas fightuntil each has torn the 
other into fragments--and neither has blood or strength left.'' 
The two glanced at each other. 
``A good simile'' said the older person. ``You are right. If a 
strong party rose--and a greater power chose not to 
interfere--the country might see better days.'' He looked at him 
a few moments longer and then waved his hand kindly. 
``You are a fine Samavian'' he said. ``I am glad of that. You 
may go. Good night.'' 
Marco bowed respectfully and the man with the tired face led him 
out of the room. 
It was just before he left him in the small quiet chamber in 
which he was to sleep that the Prince gave him a final curious 
glance. ``I remember now'' he said. ``In the roomwhen you 
answered the question about SamaviaI was sure that I had seen 
you before. It was the day of the celebration. There was a 
break in the crowd and I saw a boy looking at me. It was you.'' 
``Yes'' said Marco``I have followed you each time you have 
gone out since thenbut I could never get near enough to speak. 
To- night seemed only one chance in a thousand.'' 
``You are doing your work more like a man than a boy'' was the 
next speechand it was made reflectively. ``No man could have 
behaved more perfectly than you did just nowwhen discretion and 
composure were necessary.'' Thenafter a moment's pause``He 
was deeply interested and deeply pleased. Good night.'' 
When the gardens had been thrown open the next morning and people 
were passing in and out againMarco passed out also. He was 
obliged to tell himself two or three times that he had not 
wakened from an amazing dream. He quickened his pace after he 
had crossed the streetbecause he wanted to get home to the 
attic and talk to The Rat. There was a narrow side-street it was 
necessary for him to pass through if he wished to make a short 
cut. As he turned into ithe saw a curious figure leaning on 
crutches against a wall. It looked damp and forlornand he 
wondered if it could be a beggar. It was not. It was The Rat
who suddenly saw who was approaching and swung forward. His face 
was pale and haggard and he looked worn and frightened. He 
dragged off his cap and spoke in a voice which was hoarse as a 
crow's. 
``God be thanked!'' he said. ``God be thanked!'' as people 
always said it when they received the Signalone. But there was 
a kind of anguish in his voice as well as relief. 
``Aide-de-camp!'' Marco cried out--The Rat had begged him to call 
him so. ``What have you been doing? How long have you been 
here?'' 
``Ever since I left you last night'' said The Rat clutching 
tremblingly at his arm as if to make sure he was real. ``If 
there was not room for two in the hollowthere was room for one 
in the street. 
Was it my place to go off duty and leave you alone--was it?'' 
``You were out in the storm?'' 
``Weren't you?'' said The Rat fiercely. ``I huddled against the 
wall as well as I could. What did I care? Crutches don't 
prevent a fellow waiting. I wouldn't have left you if you'd 
given me orders. And that would have been mutiny. When you did 
not come out as soon as the gates openedI felt as if my head 
got on fire. How could I know what had happened? I've not the 
nerve and backbone you have. I go half mad.'' For a second or 
so Marco did not answer. But when he put his hand on the damp 
sleeveThe Rat actually startedbecause it seemed as though he 
were looking into the eyes of Stefan Loristan. 
``You look just like your father!'' he exclaimedin spite of 
himself. ``How tall you are!'' 
``When you are near me'' Marco saidin Loristan's own voice
``when you are near meI feel--I feel as if I were a royal 
prince attended by an army. You ARE my army.'' And he pulled 
off his cap with quick boyishness and added``God be thanked!'' 
The sun was warm in the attic window when they reached their 
lodgingand the two leaned on the rough sill as Marco told his 
story. It took some time to relate; and when he endedhe took 
an envelope from his pocket and showed it to The Rat. It 
contained a flat package of money. 
``He gave it to me just before he opened the private door'' 
Marco explained. ``And he said to me`It will not be long now. 
After Samaviago back to London as quickly as you can--AS 
QUICKLY AS YOU CAN!' '' 
``I wonder--what he meant?'' The Rat saidslowly. A tremendous 
thought had shot through his mind. But it was not a thought he 
could speak of to Marco. 
``I cannot tell. I thought that it was for some reason he did 
not expect me to know'' Marco said. ``We will do as he told us. 
As quickly as we can.'' They looked over the newspapersas they 
did every day. All that could be gathered from any of them was 
that the opposing armies of Samavia seemed each to have reached 
the culmination of disaster and exhaustion. Which party had the 
power left to take any final step which could call itself a 
victoryit was impossible to say. Never had a country been in a 
more desperate case. 
``It is the time!'' said The Ratglowering over his map. ``If 
the Secret Party rises suddenly nowit can take Melzarr almost 
without a blow. It can sweep through the country and disarm both 
armies. 
They're weakened--they're half starved--they're bleeding to 
death; they WANT to be disarmed. Only the Iarovitch and the 
Maranovitch keep on with the struggle because each is fighting 
for the power to tax the people and make slaves of them. If the 
Secret Party does not risethe people willand they'll rush on 
the palaces and kill every Maranovitch and Iarovitch they find. 
And serve them right!'' 
``Let us spend the rest of the day in studying the road-map 
again'' said Marco. ``To-night we must be on the way to 
Samavia!'' 
ACROSS THE FRONTIER 
That one daya week latertwo tired and travel- worn 
boy-mendicants should drag themselves with slow and weary feet 
across the frontier line between Jiardasia and Samaviawas not 
an incident to awaken suspicion or even to attract attention. 
War and hunger and anguish had left the country stunned and 
broken. Since the worst had happenedno one was curious as to 
what would befall them next. If Jiardasia herself had become a 
foeinstead of a friendly neighborand had sent across the 
border galloping hordes of soldierythere would only have been 
more shrieksand home-burningsand slaughter which no one dare 
resist. Butso farJiardasia had remained peaceful. The two 
boys--one of them on crutches--had evidently traveled far on 
foot. Their poor clothes were dusty and travel-stainedand they 
stopped and asked for water at the first hut across the line. 
The one who walked without crutches had some coarse bread in a 
bag slung over his shoulderand they sat on the roadside and ate 
it as if they were hungry. The old grandmother who lived alone 
in the hut sat and stared at them without any curiosity. She may 
have vaguely wondered why any one crossed into Samavia in these 
days. But she did not care to know their reason. Her big son 
had lived in a village which belonged to the Maranovitch and he 
had been called out to fight for his lords. He had not wanted to 
fight and had not known what the quarrel was aboutbut he was 
forced to obey. He had kissed his handsome wife and four sturdy 
childrenblubbering aloud when he left them. His village and 
his good crops and his house must be left behind. Then the 
Iarovitch swept through the pretty little cluster of homesteads 
which belonged to their enemy. They were mad with rage because 
they had met with great losses in a battle not far awayandas 
they swooped throughthey burned and killedand trampled down 
fields and vineyards. The old woman's son never saw either the 
burned walls of his house or the bodies of his wife and children
because he had been killed himself in the battle for which the 
Iarovitch were revenging themselves. Only the old grandmother 
who lived in the hut near the frontier line and stared vacantly 
at the passers-by remained alive. She wearily gazed at people 
and wondered why she did not hear news from her son and her 
grandchildren. But that was all. 
When the boys were over the frontier and well on their way along 
the roadsit was not difficult to keep out of sight if it seemed 
necessary. The country was mountainous and there were deep and 
thick forests by the way--forests so far-reaching and with such 
thick undergrowth that full-grown men could easily have hidden 
themselves. It was because of thisperhapsthat this part of 
the country had seen little fighting. There was too great 
opportunity for secure ambush for a foe. As the two travelers 
went onthey heard of burned villages and towns destroyedbut 
they were towns and villages nearer Melzarr and other 
fortress-defended citiesor they were in the country surrounding 
the castles and estates of powerful nobles and leaders. It was 
trueas Marco had said to the white-haired personagethat the 
Maranovitch and Iarovitch had fought with the savageness of 
hyenas until at last the forces of each side lay torn and 
bleedingtheir strengththeir resourcestheir supplies 
exhausted. 
Each day left them weaker and more desperate. Europe looked on 
with small interest in either party but with growing desire that 
the disorder should end and cease to interfere with commerce. 
All this and much more Marco and The Rat knewbutas they made 
their cautious way through byways of the maimed and tortured 
little countrythey learned other things. They learned that the 
stories of its beauty and fertility were not romances. Its 
heaven-reaching mountainsits immense plains of rich verdure on 
which flocks and herds might have fed by thousandsits splendor 
of deep forest and broad clear rushing rivers had a primeval 
majesty such as the first human creatures might have found on 
earth in the days of the Garden of Eden. The two boys traveled 
through forest and woodland when it was possible to leave the 
road. It was safe to thread a way among huge trees and tall 
ferns and young saplings. It was not always easy but it was 
safe. Sometimes they saw a charcoal-burner's hut or a shelter 
where a shepherd was hiding with the few sheep left to him. Each 
man they met wore the same look of stony suffering in his face; 
butwhen the boys begged for bread and wateras was their 
habitno one refused to share the little he had. It soon became 
plain to them that they were thought to be two young fugitives 
whose homes had probably been destroyed and who were wandering 
about with no thought but that of finding safety until the worst 
was over. That one of them traveled on crutches added to their 
apparent helplessnessand that he could not speak the language 
of the country made him more an object of pity. The peasants did 
not know what language he spoke. Sometimes a foreigner came to 
find work in this small town or that. The poor lad might have 
come to the country with his father and mother and then have been 
caught in the whirlpool of war and tossed out on the world 
parent-less. But no one asked questions. Even in their 
desolation they were silent and noble people who were too 
courteous for curiosity. 
``In the old days they were simple and stately and kind. All 
doors were open to travelers. The master of the poorest hut 
uttered a blessing and a welcome when a stranger crossed his 
threshold. It was the custom of the country'' Marco said. ``I 
read about it in a book of my father's. About most of the doors 
the welcome was carved in stone. It was this--`The Blessing of 
the Son of Godand Rest within these Walls.' '' 
``They are big and strong'' said The Rat. ``And they have good 
faces. They carry themselves as if they had been drilled--both 
men and women.'' 
It was not through the blood-drenched part of the unhappy land 
their way led thembut they saw hunger and dread in the villages 
they passed. Crops which should have fed the people had been 
taken from them for the use of the army; flocks and herds had 
been driven awayand faces were gaunt and gray. Those who had 
as yet only lost crops and herds knew that homes and lives might 
be torn from them at any moment. Only old men and women and 
children were left to wait for any fate which the chances of war 
might deal out to them. 
When they were given food from some poor storeMarco would offer 
a little money in return. He dare not excite suspicion by 
offering much. He was obliged to let it be imagined that in his 
flight from his ruined home he had been able to snatch at and 
secrete some poor hoard which might save him from starvation. 
Often the women would not take what he offered. Their journey 
was a hard and hungry one. They must make it all on foot and 
there was little food to be found. But each of them knew how to 
live on scant fare. They traveled mostly by night and slept 
among the ferns and undergrowth through the day. They drank from 
running brooks and bathed in them. Moss and ferns made soft and 
sweet-smelling bedsand trees roofed them. Sometimes they lay 
long and talked while they rested. And at length a day came when 
they knew they were nearing their journey's end. 
``It is nearly over now'' Marco saidafter they had thrown 
themselves down in the forest in the early hours of one dewy 
morning. ``He said `After Samaviago back to London as quickly 
as you can --AS QUICKLY AS YOU CAN.' He said it twice. As 
if--something were going to happen.'' 
``Perhaps it will happen more suddenly than we think--the thing 
he meant'' answered The Rat. 
Suddenly he sat up on his elbow and leaned towards Marco. 
``We are in Samavia!'' he said ``We two are in Samavia! And we 
are near the end!'' 
Marco rose on his elbow also. He was very thin as a result of 
hard travel and scant feeding. His thinness made his eyes look 
immense and black as pits. But they burned and were beautiful 
with their own fire. 
``Yes'' he saidbreathing quickly. ``And though we do not know 
what the end will bewe have obeyed orders. The Prince was next 
to the last one. There is only one more. The old priest.'' 
``I have wanted to see him more than I have wanted to see any of 
the others'' The Rat said. 
``So have I'' Marco answered. ``His church is built on the side 
of this mountain. I wonder what he will say to us.'' 
Both had the same reason for wanting to see him. In his youth he 
had served in the monastery over the frontier--the one which
till it was destroyed in a revolthad treasured the 
five-hundred-year-old story of the beautiful royal lad brought to 
be hidden among the brotherhood by the ancient shepherd. In the 
monastery the memory of the Lost Prince was as the memory of a 
saint. It had been told that one of the early brotherswho was 
a decorator and a painterhad made a picture of him with a faint 
halo shining about his head. The young acolyte who had served 
there must have heard wonderful legends. But the monastery had 
been burnedand the young acolyte had in later years crossed the 
frontier and become the priest of a few mountaineers whose little 
church clung to the mountain side. He had worked hard and 
faithfully and was worshipped by his people. Only the secret 
Forgers of the Sword knew that his most ardent worshippers were 
those with whom he prayed and to whom he gave blessings in dark 
caverns under the earthwhere arms piled themselves and men with 
dark strong faces sat together in the dim light and laid plans 
and wrought schemes. 
This Marco and The Rat did not know as they talked of their 
desire to see him. 
``He may not choose to tell us anything'' said Marco. ``When we 
have given him the Signhe may turn away and say nothing as some 
of the others did. He may have nothing to say which we should 
hear. Silence may be the order for himtoo.'' 
It would not be a long or dangerous climb to the little church on 
the rock. They could sleep or rest all day and begin it at 
twilight. So after they had talked of the old priest and had 
eaten their black breadthey settled themselves to sleep under 
cover of the thick tall ferns. 
It was a long and deep sleep which nothing disturbed. So few 
human beings ever climbed the hillexcept by the narrow rough 
path leading to the churchthat the little wild creatures had 
not learned to be afraid of them. Onceduring the afternoona 
hare hopping along under the ferns to make a visit stopped by 
Marco's headandafter looking at him a few seconds with his 
lustrous eyesbegan to nibble the ends of his hair. He only did 
it from curiosity and because he wondered if it might be a new 
kind of grassbut he did not like it and stopped nibbling almost 
at onceafter which he looked at it againmoving the soft 
sensitive end of his nose rapidly for a second or soand then 
hopped away to attend to his own affairs. A very large and 
handsome green stag-beetle crawled from one end of The Rat's 
crutches to the otherbuthaving done ithe went away also. 
Two or three times a birdsearching for his dinner under the 
fernswas surprised to find the two sleeping figuresbutas 
they lay so quietlythere seemed nothing to be frightened about. 
A beautiful little field mouse running past discovered that there 
were crumbs lying about and ate all she could find on the moss. 
After that she crept into Marco's pocket and found some excellent 
ones and had quite a feast. But she disturbed nobody and the 
boys slept on. 
It was a bird's evening song which awakened them both. The bird 
alighted on the branch of a tree near them and her trill was 
rippling clear and sweet. The evening air had freshened and was 
fragrant with hillside scents. When Marco first rolled over and 
opened his eyeshe thought the most delicious thing on earth was 
to waken from sleep on a hillside at evening and hear a bird 
singing. It seemed to make exquisitely real to him the fact that 
he was in Samavia--that the Lamp was lighted and his work was 
nearly done. The Rat awakened when he didand for a few minutes 
both lay on their backs without speaking. At last Marco said
``The stars are coming out. We can begin to climb
Aide-de-camp.'' 
Then they both got up and looked at each other. 
``The last one!'' The Rat said. ``To-morrow we shall be on our 
way back to London--Number 7 Philibert Place. After all the 
places we've been to--what will it look like?'' 
``It will be like wakening out of a dream'' said Marco. ``It's 
not beautiful--Philibert Place. But HE will be there'' And it 
was as if a light lighted itself in his face and shone through 
the very darkness of it. 
And The Rat's face lighted in almost exactly the same way. And 
he pulled off his cap and stood bare-headed. ``We've obeyed 
orders'' he said. ``We've not forgotten one. No one has 
noticed usno one has thought of us. We've blown through the 
countries as if we had been grains of dust.'' 
Marco's head was baredtooand his face was still shining. 
``God be thanked!'' he said. ``Let us begin to climb.'' 
They pushed their way through the ferns and wandered in and out 
through trees until they found the little path. The hill was 
thickly clothed with forest and the little path was sometimes 
dark and steep; but they knew thatif they followed itthey 
would at last come out to a place where there were scarcely any 
trees at alland on a crag they would find the tiny church 
waiting for them. The priest might not be there. They might 
have to wait for himbut he would be sure to come back for 
morning Mass and for vesperswheresoever he wandered between 
times. 
There were many stars in the sky when at last a turn of the path 
showed them the church above them. It was little and built of 
rough stone. It looked as if the priest himself and his 
scattered flock might have broken and carried or rolled bits of 
the hill to put it together. It had the smallround
mosque-like summit the Turks had brought into Europe in centuries 
past. It was so tiny that it would hold but a very small 
congregation--and close to it was a shed-like housewhich was of 
course the priest's. 
The two boys stopped on the path to look at it. 
``There is a candle burning in one of the little windows'' said 
Marco. 
``There is a well near the door--and some one is beginning to 
draw water'' said The Ratnext. ``It is too dark to see who it 
is. Listen!'' 
They listened and heard the bucket descend on the chainsand 
splash in the water. Then it was drawn upand it seemed some 
one drank long. Then they saw a dim figure move forward and 
stand still. Then they heard a voice begin to pray aloudas if 
the ownerbeing accustomed to utter solitudedid not think of 
earthly hearers. 
``Come'' Marco said. And they went forward. 
Because the stars were so many and the air so clearthe priest 
heard their feet on the pathand saw them almost as soon as he 
heard them. He ended his prayer and watched them coming. A lad 
on crutcheswho moved as lightly and easily as a bird--and a lad 
whoeven yards awaywas noticeable for a bearing of his body 
which was neither haughty nor proud but set him somehow aloof 
from every other lad one had ever seen. A magnificent 
lad--thoughas he drew nearthe starlight showed his face thin 
and his eyes hollow as if with fatigue or hunger. 
``And who is this one?'' the old priest murmured to himself. 
``WHO?'' 
Marco drew up before him and made a respectful reverence. Then 
he lifted his black headsquared his shoulders and uttered his 
message for the last time. 
``The Lamp is lightedFather'' he said. ``The Lamp is 
lighted.'' 
The old priest stood quite still and gazed into his face. The 
next moment he bent his head so that he could look at him 
closely. It 
seemed almost as if he were frightened and wanted to make sure of 
something. At the moment it flashed through The Rat's mind that 
the oldold woman on the mountain-top had looked frightened in 
something the same way. 
``I am an old man'' he said. ``My eyes are not good. If I had 
a light''--and he glanced towards the house. 
It was The Rat whowith one whirlswung through the door and 
seized the candle. He guessed what he wanted. He held it 
himself so that the flare fell on Marco's face. 
The old priest drew nearer and nearer. He gasped for breath. 
``You are the son of Stefan Loristan!'' he cried. ``It is HIS 
SON who brings the Sign.'' 
He fell upon his knees and hid his face in his hands. Both the 
boys heard him sobbing and praying--praying and sobbing at once. 
They glanced at each other. The Rat was bursting with 
excitementbut he felt a little awkward also and wondered what 
Marco would do. An old fellow on his kneescryingmade a chap 
feel as if he didn't know what to say. Must you comfort him or 
must you let him go on? 
Marco only stood quite still and looked at him with understanding 
and gravity. 
``YesFatherhe said. ``I am the son of Stefan Loristanand I 
have given the Sign to all. You are the last one. The Lamp is 
lighted. I could weep for gladnesstoo.'' 
The priest's tears and prayers ended. He rose to his feet--a 
rugged-faced old man with long and thick white hair which fell on 
his shoulders--and smiled at Marco while his eyes were still wet. 
``You have passed from one country to another with the message?'' 
he said. ``You were under orders to say those four words?'' 
``YesFather'' answered Marco. 
``That was all? You were to say no more?'' 
``I know no more. Silence has been the order since I took my 
oath of allegiance when I was a child. I was not old enough to 
fightor serveor reason about great things. All I could do 
was to be silentand to train myself to rememberand be ready 
when I was called. When my father saw I was readyhe trusted 
me to go out and give the Sign. He told me the four words. 
Nothing else.'' 
The old man watched him with a wondering face. 
``If Stefan Loristan does not know best'' he said``who does?'' 
``He always knows'' answered Marco proudly. ``Always.'' He 
waved his hand like a young king toward The Rat. He wanted each 
man they met to understand the value of The Rat. ``He chose for 
me this companion'' he added. ``I have done nothing alone.'' 
``He let me call myself his aide-de-camp!'' burst forth The Rat. 
``I would be cut into inch-long strips for him.'' 
Marco translated. 
Then the priest looked at The Rat and slowly nodded his head. 
``Yes'' he said. ``He knew best. He always knows best. That I 
see.'' 
``How did you know I was my father's son?'' asked Marco. ``You 
have seen him?'' 
``No'' was the answer; ``but I have seen a picture which is said 
to be his image--and you are the picture's self. It isindeed
a strange thing that two of God's creatures should be so alike. 
There is a purpose in it.'' He led them into his bare small 
house and made them restand drink goat's milkand eat food. 
As he moved about the hut-like placethere was a mysterious and 
exalted look on his face. 
``You must be refreshed before we leave here'' he said at last. 
``I am going to take you to a place hidden in the mountains where 
there are men whose hearts will leap at the sight of you. To see 
you will give them new power and courage and new resolve. To-
night they meet as they or their ancestors have met for 
centuriesbut now they are nearing the end of their waiting. 
And I shall bring them the son of Stefan Loristanwho is the 
Bearer of the Sign!'' 
They ate the bread and cheese and drank the goat's milk he gave 
thembut Marco explained that they did not need rest as they had 
slept all day. They were prepared to follow him when he was 
ready. 
The last faint hint of twilight had died into night and the stars 
were at their thickest when they set out together. The 
white-haired old man took a thick knotted staff in his hand and 
led the way. He knew it wellthough it was a rugged and steep 
one with no track to mark it. Sometimes they seemed to be 
walking around the mountainsometimes they were climbing
sometimes they dragged themselves over rocks or fallen treesor 
struggled through almost impassable thickets; more than once they 
descended into ravines andalmost at the risk of their lives
clambered and drew themselves with the aid of the undergrowth up 
the other side. The Rat was called upon to use all his prowess
and sometimes Marco and the priest helped him across obstacles 
with the aid of his crutch. 
``Haven't I shown to-night whether I'm a cripple or not?'' he 
said once to Marco. ``You can tell HIM about thiscan't you? 
And that the crutches helped instead of being in the way?'' 
They had been out nearly two hours when they came to a place 
where the undergrowth was thick and a huge tree had fallen 
crashing down among it in some storm. Not far from the tree was 
an outcropping rock. Only the top of it was to be seen above the 
heavy tangle. 
They had pushed their way through the jungle of bushes and young 
saplingsled by their companion. They did not know where they 
would be led next and were supposed to push forward further when 
the priest stopped by the outcropping rock. He stood silent a 
few minutes--quite motionless--as if he were listening to the 
forest and the night. But there was utter stillness. There was 
not even a breeze to stir a leafor a half-wakened bird to 
sleepily chirp. 
He struck the rock with his staff--twiceand then twice again. 
Marco and The Rat stood with bated breath. 
They did not wait long. Presently each of them found himself 
leaning forwardstaring with almost unbelieving eyesnot at the 
priest or his staffbut at THE ROCK ITSELF! 
It was moving! Yesit moved. The priest stepped aside and it 
slowly turnedas if worked by a lever. As it turnedit 
gradually revealed a chasm of darkness dimly lightedand the 
priest spoke to Marco. ``There are hiding-places like this all 
through Samavia'' he said. ``Patience and misery have waited 
long in them. They are the caverns of the Forgers of the Sword. 
Come!'' 
XXVII 
``IT IS THE LOST PRINCE! IT IS IVOR!'' 
Many times since their journey had begun the boys had found their 
hearts beating with the thrill and excitement of things. The 
story of which their lives had been a part was a pulse-quickening 
experience. But as they carefully made their way down the steep 
steps leading seemingly into the bowels of the earthboth Marco 
and The Rat felt as though the old priest must hear the thudding 
in their young sides. 
`` `The Forgers of the Sword.' Remember every word they say'' 
The Rat whispered``so that you can tell it to me afterwards. 
Don't forget anything! I wish I knew Samavian.'' 
At the foot of the steps stood the man who was evidently the 
sentinel who worked the lever that turned the rock. He was a big 
burly peasant with a good watchful faceand the priest gave him 
a greeting and a blessing as he took from him the lantern he held 
out. 
They went through a narrow and dark passageand down some more 
stepsand turned a corner into another corridor cut out of rock 
and earth. It was a wider corridorbut still darkso that 
Marco and The Rat had walked some yards before their eyes became 
sufficiently accustomed to the dim light to see that the walls 
themselves seemed made of arms stacked closely together. 
``The Forgers of the Sword!'' The Rat was unconsciously mumbling 
to himself``The Forgers of the Sword!'' 
It must have taken years to cut out the rounding passage they 
threaded their way throughand longer years to forge the solid
bristling walls. But The Rat remembered the story the stranger 
had told his drunken fatherof the few mountain herdsmen whoin 
their savage grief and wrath over the loss of their princehad 
banded themselves together with a solemn oath which had been 
handed down from generation to generation. The Samavians were a 
long-memoried peopleand the fact that their passion must be 
smothered had made it burn all the more fiercely. Five hundred 
years ago they had first sworn their oath; and kings had come and 
gonehad died or been murderedand dynasties had changedbut 
the Forgers of the Sword had not changed or forgotten their oath 
or wavered in their belief that some time--some timeeven after 
the long dark years--the soul of their Lost Prince would be among 
them once moreand that they would kneel at the feet and kiss 
the hands of him for whose body that soul had been reborn. And 
for the last hundred years their number and power and their 
hiding places had so increased that Samavia was at last 
honeycombed with them. And they only waitedbreathless--for 
the Lighting of the Lamp. 
The old priest knew how breathlesslyand he knew what he was 
bringing them. Marco and The Ratin spite of their fond boyimaginings
were not quite old enough to know how fierce and full 
of flaming eagerness the breathless waiting of savage full-grown 
men could be. But there was a tense-strung thrill in knowing 
that they who were being led to them were the Bearers of the 
Sign. The Rat went hot and cold; he gnawed his fingers as he 
went. He could almost have shrieked aloudin the intensity of 
his excitementwhen the old priest stopped before a big black 
door! 
Marco made no sound. Excitement or danger always made him look 
tall and quite pale. He looked both now. 
The priest touched the doorand it opened. 
They were looking into an immense cavern. Its walls and roof 
were lined with arms--gunsswordsbayonetsjavelinsdaggers
pistolsevery weapon a desperate man might use. The place was 
full of menwho turned towards the door when it opened. They 
all made obeisance to the priestbut Marco realized almost at 
the same instant that they started on seeing that he was not 
alone. 
They were a strange and picturesque crowd as they stood under 
their canopy of weapons in the lurid torchlight. Marco saw at 
once that they were men of all classesthough all were alike 
roughly dressed. They were huge mountaineersand plainsmen 
young and mature in years. Some of the biggest were men with 
white hair but with bodies of giantsand with determination in 
their strong jaws. There were many of theseMarco sawand in 
each man's eyeswhether he were young or oldglowed a steady 
unconquered flame. They had been beaten so oftenthey had been 
oppressed and robbedbut in the eyes of each one was this 
unconquered flame whichthroughout all the long tragedy of years 
had been handed down from father to son. It was this which had 
gone on through centurieskeeping its oath and forging its 
swords in the caverns of the earthand which to-day 
was--waiting. 
The old priest laid his hand on Marco's shoulderand gently 
pushed him before him through the crowd which parted to make way 
for them. He did not stop until the two stood in the very midst 
of the circlewhich fell back gazing wonderingly. Marco looked 
up at the old man because for several seconds he did not speak. 
It was plain that he did not speak because he also was excited
and could not. He opened his lips and his voice seemed to fail 
him. Then he tried again and spoke so that all could hear--even 
the men at the back of the gazing circle. 
``My children'' he said``this is the son of Stefan Loristan
and he comes to bear the Sign. My son'' to Marco``speak!'' 
Then Marco understood what he wishedand also what he felt. He 
felt it himselfthat magnificent uplifting gladnessas he 
spokeholding his black head high and lifting his right hand. 
``The Lamp is Lightedbrothers!'' he cried. ``The Lamp is 
Lighted!'' 
Then The Ratwho stood apartwatchingthought that the strange 
world within the cavern had gone mad! Wild smothered cries broke 
forthmen caught each other in passionate embracethey fell 
upon their kneesthey clutched one another sobbingthey wrung 
each other's handsthey leaped into the air. It was as if they 
could not bear the joy of hearing that the end of their waiting 
had come at last. They rushed upon Marcoand fell at his feet. 
The Rat saw big peasants kissing his shoeshis handsevery 
scrap of his clothing they could seize. The wild circle swayed 
and closed upon him until The Rat was afraid. He did not know 
thatoverpowered by this frenzy of emotionhis own excitement 
was making him shake from head to foot like a leafand that 
tears were streaming down his cheeks. The swaying crowd hid 
Marco from himand he began to fight his way towards him because 
his excitement increased with fear. The ecstasy-frenzied crowd 
of men seemed for the moment to have almost ceased to be sane. 
Marco was only a boy. They did not know how fiercely they were 
pressing upon him and keeping away the very air. 
``Don't kill him! Don't kill him!'' yelled The Ratstruggling 
forward. ``Stand backyou fools! I'm his aide-de-camp! Let me 
pass!'' 
And though no one understood his Englishone or two suddenly 
remembered they had seen him enter with the priest and so gave 
way. But just then the old priest lifted his hand above the 
crowdand spoke in a voice of stern command. 
``Stand backmy children!'' he cried. ``Madness is not the 
homage you must bring to the son of Stefan Loristan. Obey! 
Obey!'' His voice had a power in it that penetrated even the 
wildest herdsmen. The frenzied mass swayed back and left space 
about Marcowhose face The Rat could at last see. It was very 
white with emotionand in his eyes there was a look which was 
like awe. 
The Rat pushed forward until he stood beside him. He did not 
know that he almost sobbed as he spoke. 
``I'm your aide-de-camp'' he said. ``I'm going to stand here! 
Your father sent me! I'm under orders! I thought they'd crush 
you to death.'' 
He glared at the circle about them as ifinstead of worshippers 
distraught with adorationthey had been enemies. The old priest 
seeing himtouched Marco's arm. 
``Tell him he need not fear'' he said. ``It was only for the 
first few moments. The passion of their souls drove them wild. 
They are your slaves.'' 
``Those at the back might have pushed the front ones on until 
they trampled you under foot in spite of themselves!'' The Rat 
persisted. 
``No'' said Marco. ``They would have stopped if I had spoken.'' 
``Why didn't you speak then?'' snapped The Rat. 
``All they felt was for Samaviaand for my father'' Marco said
``and for the Sign. I felt as they did.'' 
The Rat was somewhat softened. It was trueafter all. How 
could he have tried to quell the outbursts of their worship of 
Loristan-- of the country he was saving for them--of the Sign 
which called them to freedom? He could not. 
Then followed a strange and picturesque ceremonial. The priest 
went about among the encircling crowd and spoke to one man after 
another--sometimes to a group. A larger circle was formed. As 
the pale old man moved aboutThe Rat felt as if some religious 
ceremony were going to be performed. Watching it from first to 
lasthe was thrilled to the core. 
At the end of the cavern a block of stone had been cut out to 
look like an altar. It was covered with whiteand against the 
wall above it hung a large picture veiled by a curtain. From the 
roof there swung before it an ancient lamp of metal suspended by 
chains. In front of the altar was a sort of stone dais. There 
the priest asked Marco to standwith his aide-de-camp on the 
lower level in attendance. A knot of the biggest herdsmen went 
out and returned. Each carried a huge sword which had perhaps 
been of the earliest made in the dark days gone by. The bearers 
formed themselves into a line on either side of Marco. They 
raised their swords and formed a pointed arch above his head and 
a passage twelve men long. When the points first clashed 
together The Rat struck himself hard upon his breast. His 
exultation was too keen to endure. He gazed at Marco standing 
still--in that curiously splendid way in which both he and his 
father COULD stand still--and wondered how he could do it. He 
looked as if he were prepared for any strange thing which could 
happen to him--because he was ``under orders.'' The Rat knew 
that he was doing whatsoever he did merely for his father's sake. 
It was as if he felt that he was representing his fatherthough 
he was a mere boy; and that because of thisboy as he washe 
must bear himself nobly and remain outwardly undisturbed. 
At the end of the arch of swordsthe old priest stood and gave a 
sign to one man after another. When the sign was given to a man 
he walked under the arch to the daisand there knelt and
lifting Marco's hand to his lipskissed it with passionate 
fervor. Then he returned to the place he had left. One after 
another passed up the aisle of swordsone after another knelt
one after the other kissed the brown young handrose and went 
away. Sometimes The Rat heard a few words which sounded almost 
like a murmured prayersometimes he heard a sob as a shaggy head 
bentagain and again he saw eyes wet with tears. Once or twice 
Marco spoke a few Samavian wordsand the face of the man spoken 
to flamed with joy. The Rat had time to seeas Marco had seen
that many of the faces were not those of peasants. Some of them 
were clear cut and subtle and of the type of scholars or nobles. 
It took a long time for them all to kneel and kiss the lad's 
handbut no man omitted the ceremony; and when at last it was at 
an enda strange silence filled the cavern. They stood and 
gazed at each other with burning eyes. 
The priest moved to Marco's sideand stood near the altar. He 
leaned forward and took in his hand a cord which hung from the 
veiled picture--he drew it and the curtain fell apart. There 
seemed to stand gazing at them from between its folds a tall 
kingly youth with deep eyes in which the stars of God were stilly 
shiningand with a smile wonderful to behold. Around the heavy 
locks of his black hair the long dead painter of missals had set 
a faint glow of light like a halo. 
``Son of Stefan Loristan'' the old priest saidin a shaken 
voice``it is the Lost Prince! It is Ivor!'' 
Then every man in the room fell on his knees. Even the men who 
had upheld the archway of swords dropped their weapons with a 
crash and knelt also. He was their saint--this boy! Dead for 
five hundred yearshe was their saint still. 
``Ivor! Ivor!'' the voices broke into a heavy murmur. ``Ivor! 
Ivor!'' as if they chanted a litany. 
Marco started forwardstaring at the picturehis breath caught 
in his throathis lips apart. 
``But--but--'' he stammered``but if my father were as young as 
he is--he would be LIKE him!'' 
``When you are as old as he isYOU will be like him--YOU!'' said 
the priest. And he let the curtain fall. 
The Rat stood staring with wide eyes from Marco to the picture 
and from the picture to Marco. And he breathed faster and faster 
and gnawed his finger ends. But he did not utter a word. He 
could not have done itif he tried. 
Then Marco stepped down from the dais as if he were in a dream
and the old man followed him. The men with swords sprang to 
their feet and made their archway again with a new clash of 
steel. The old man and the boy passed under it together. Now 
every man's eyes were fixed on Marco. At the heavy door by which 
he had enteredhe stopped and turned to meet their glances. He 
looked very young and thin and palebut suddenly his father's 
smile was lighted in his face. He said a few words in Samavian 
clearly and gravelysalutedand passed out. 
``What did you say to them?'' gasped The Ratstumbling after him 
as the door closed behind them and shut in the murmur of 
impassioned sound. 
``There was only one thing to say'' was the answer. ``They are 
men--I am only a boy. I thanked them for my fatherand told 
them he would never--never forget.'' 
XXVIII 
``EXTRA! EXTRA! EXTRA!'' 
It was raining in London--pouring. It had been raining for two 
weeksmore or lessgenerally more. When the train from Dover 
drew in at Charing Crossthe weather seemed suddenly to have 
considered that it had so far been too lenient and must express 
itself much more vigorously. So it had gathered together its 
resources and poured them forth in a deluge which surprised even 
Londoners. 
The rain so beat against and streamed down the windows of the 
third-class carriage in which Marco and The Rat sat that they 
could not see through them. 
They had made their homeward journey much more rapidly than they 
had made the one on which they had been outward bound. It had 
of course taken them some time to tramp back to the frontierbut 
there had been no reason for stopping anywhere after they had 
once reached the railroads. They had been tired sometimesbut 
they had slept heavily on the wooden seats of the railway 
carriages. Their one desire was to get home. No. 7 Philibert 
Place rose before them in its noisy dinginess as the one 
desirable spot on earth. To Marco it held his father. And it 
was Loristan alone that The Rat saw when he thought of it. 
Loristan as he would look when he saw him come into the room with 
Marcoand stand up and saluteand say: ``I have brought him 
backsir. He has carried out every single order you gave 
him--every single one. So have I.'' So he had. He had been 
sent as his companion and attendantand he had been faithful in 
every thought. If Marco would have allowed himhe would have 
waited upon him like a servantand have been proud of the 
service. But Marco would never let him forget that they were 
only two boys and that one was of no more importance than the 
other. He had secretly even felt this attitude to be a sort of 
grievance. It would have been more like a game if one of them 
had been the mere servitor of the otherand if that other had 
blustered a littleand issued commandsand demanded sacrifices. 
If the faithful vassal could have been wounded or cast into a 
dungeon for his young commander's sakethe adventure would have 
been more complete. But though their journey had been full of 
wonders and rich with beautiesthough the memory of it hung in 
The Rat's mind like a background of tapestry embroidered in all 
the hues of the earth with all the splendors of itthere had 
been no dungeons and no wounds. After the adventure in Munich 
their unimportant boyishness had not even been observed by such 
perils as might have threatened them. As The Rat had saidthey 
had ``blown like grains of dust'' through Europe and had been as 
nothing. And this was what Loristan had plannedthis was what 
his grave thought had wrought out. If they had been menthey 
would not have been so safe. 
From the time they had left the old priest on the hillside to 
begin their journey back to the frontierthey both had been 
given to long silences as they tramped side by side or lay on the 
moss in the forests. Now that their work was donea sort of 
reaction had set in. There were no more plans to be made and no 
more uncertainties to contemplate. They were on their way back 
to No. 7 Philibert Place--Marco to his fatherThe Rat to the man 
he worshipped. Each of them was thinking of many things. Marco 
was full of longing to see his father's face and hear his voice 
again. He wanted to feel the pressure of his hand on his 
shoulder--to be sure that he was real and not a dream. This last 
was because during this homeward journey everything that had 
happened often seemed to be a dream. It had all been so 
wonderful--the climber standing looking down at them the morning 
they awakened on the Gaisburg; the mountaineer shoemaker 
measuring his foot in the small shop; the oldold woman and her 
noble lord; the Prince with his face turned upward as he stood on 
the balcony looking at the moon; the old priest kneeling and 
weeping for joy; the great cavern with the yellow light upon the 
crowd of passionate faces; the curtain which fell apart and 
showed the still eyes and the black hair with the halo about it! 
Now that they were left behindthey all seemed like things he 
had dreamed. But he had not dreamed them; he was going back to 
tell his father about them. And how GOOD it would be to feel his 
hand on his shoulder! 
The Rat gnawed his finger ends a great deal. His thoughts were 
more wild and feverish than Marco's. They leaped forward in 
spite of him. It was no use to pull himself up and tell himself 
that he was a fool. Now that all was overhe had time to be as 
great a fool as he was inclined to be. But how he longed to 
reach London and stand face to face with Loristan! The sign was 
given. The Lamp was lighted. What would happen next? His 
crutches were under his arms before the train drew up. 
``We're there! We're there!'' he cried restlessly to Marco. 
They had no luggage to delay them. They took their bags and 
followed the crowd along the platform. The rain was rattling 
like bullets against the high glassed roof. People turned to 
look at Marcoseeing the glow of exultant eagerness in his face. 
They thought he must be some boy coming home for the holidays and 
going to make a visit at a place he delighted in. The rain was 
dancing on the pavements when they reached the entrance. 
``A cab won't cost much'' Marco said``and it will take us 
quickly.'' 
They called one and got into it. Each of them had flushed 
cheeksand Marco's eyes looked as if he were gazing at something 
a long way off--gazing at itand wondering. 
``We've come back!'' said The Ratin an unsteady voice. ``We've 
been--and we've come back!'' Then suddenly turning to look at 
Marco``Does it ever seem to you as ifperhapsit--it wasn't 
true?'' 
``Yes'' Marco answered``but it was true. And it's done.'' 
Then he added after a second or so of silencejust what The Rat 
had said to himself``What next?'' He said it very low. 
The way to Philibert Place was not long. When they turned into 
the roaringuntidy roadwhere the busses and drays and carts 
struggled past each other with their loadsand the tired-faced 
people hurried in crowds along the pavementthey looked at them 
all feeling that they had left their dream far behind indeed. 
But they were at home. 
It was a good thing to see Lazarus open the door and stand 
waiting before they had time to get out of the cab. Cabs stopped 
so seldom before houses in Philibert Place that the inmates were 
always prompt to open their doors. When Lazarus had seen this 
one stop at the broken iron gatehe had known whom it brought. 
He had kept an eye on the windows faithfully for many a day--even 
when he knew that it was too sooneven if all was wellfor any 
travelers to return. 
He bore himself with an air more than usually military and his 
salute when Marco crossed the threshold was formal stateliness 
itself. But his greeting burst from his heart. 
``God be thanked!'' he said in his deep growl of joy. ``God be 
thanked!'' 
When Marco put forth his handhe bent his grizzled head and 
kissed it devoutly. 
``God be thanked!'' he said again. 
``My father?'' Marco began``my father is out?'' If he had been 
in the househe knew he would not have stayed in the back 
sitting-room. 
``Sir'' said Lazarus``will you come with me into his room? 
Youtoosir'' to The Rat. He had never said ``sir'' to him 
before. 
He opened the door of the familiar roomand the boys entered. 
The room was empty. 
Marco did not speak; neither did The Rat. They both stood still 
in the middle of the shabby carpet and looked up at the old 
soldier. Both had suddenly the same feeling that the earth had 
dropped from beneath their feet. Lazarus saw it and spoke fast 
and with tremor. He was almost as agitated as they were. 
``He left me at your service--at your command''--he began. 
``Left you?'' said Marco. 
``He left usall threeunder orders--to WAIT'' said Lazarus. 
``The Master has gone.'' 
The Rat felt something hot rush into his eyes. He brushed it 
away that he might look at Marco's face. The shock had changed 
it very much. Its glowing eager joy had died outit had turned 
paler and his brows were drawn together. For a few seconds he 
did not speak at allandwhen he did speakThe Rat knew that 
his voice was steady only because he willed that it should be so. 
``If he has gone'' he said``it is because he had a strong 
reason. It was because he also was under orders.'' 
``He said that you would know that'' Lazarus answered. ``He was 
called in such haste that he had not a moment in which to do more 
than write a few words. He left them for you on his desk 
there.'' 
Marco walked over to the desk and opened the envelope which was 
lying there. There were only a few lines on the sheet of paper 
inside and they had evidently been written in the greatest haste. 
They were these: 
``The Life of my life--for Samavia.'' 
``He was called--to Samavia'' Marco saidand the thought sent 
his blood rushing through his veins. ``He has gone to Samavia!'' 
Lazarus drew his hand roughly across his eyes and his voice shook 
and sounded hoarse. 
``There has been great disaffection in the camps of the 
Maranovitch'' he said. ``The remnant of the army has gone mad. 
Sirsilence is still the orderbut who knows--who knows? God 
alone.'' 
He had not finished speaking before he turned his head as if 
listening to sounds in the road. They were the kind of sounds 
which had broken up The Squadand sent it rushing down the 
passage into the street to seize on a newspaper. There was to be 
heard a commotion of newsboys shouting riotously some startling 
piece of news which had called out an ``Extra.'' 
The Rat heard it first and dashed to the front door. As he 
opened it a newsboy running by shouted at the topmost power of 
his lungs the news he had to sell: ``Assassination of King 
Michael Maranovitch by his own soldiers! Assassination of the 
Maranovitch! Extra! Extra! Extra!'' 
When The Rat returned with a newspaperLazarus interposed 
between him and Marco with great and respectful ceremony. 
``Sir'' he said to Marco``I am at your commandbut the Master 
left me with an order which I was to repeat to you. He requested 
you NOT to read the newspapers until he himself could see you 
again.'' 
Both boys fell back. 
``Not read the papers!'' they exclaimed together. 
Lazarus had never before been quite so reverential and 
ceremonious. 
``Your pardonsir'' he said. ``I may read them at your orders
and report such things as it is well that you should know. There 
have been dark tales told and there may be darker ones. He asked 
that you would not read for yourself. If you meet again--when 
you meet again''--he corrected himself hastily--``when you meet 
againhe says you will understand. I am your servant. I will 
read and answer all such questions as I can.'' 
The Rat handed him the paper and they returned to the back room 
together. 
``You shall tell us what he would wish us to hear'' Marco said. 
The news was soon told. The story was not a long one as exact 
details had not yet reached London. It was briefly that the head 
of the Maranovitch party had been put to death by infuriated 
soldiers of his own army. It was an army drawn chiefly from a 
peasantry which did not love its leadersor wish to fightand 
suffering and brutal treatment had at last roused it to furious 
revolt. 
``What next?'' said Marco. 
``If I were a Samavian--'' began The Rat and then he stopped. 
Lazarus stood biting his lipsbut staring stonily at the carpet. 
Not The Rat alone but Marco also noted a grim change in him. It 
was grim because it suggested that he was holding himself under 
an iron control. It was as if while tortured by anxiety he had 
sworn not to allow himself to look anxious and the resolve set 
his jaw hard and carved new lines in his rugged face. Each boy 
thought this in secretbut did not wish to put it into words. 
If he was anxioushe could only be so for one reasonand each 
realized what the reason must be. Loristan had gone to 
Samavia--to the torn and bleeding country filled with riot and 
danger. If he had goneit could only have been because its 
danger called him and he went to face it at its worst. Lazarus 
had been left behind to watch over them. Silence was still the 
orderand what he knew he could not tell themand perhaps he 
knew little more than that a great life might be lost. 
Because his master was absentthe old soldier seemed to feel 
that he must comfort himself with a greater ceremonial reverance 
than he had ever shown before. He held himself within calland 
at Marco's ordersas it had been his custom to hold himself with 
regard to Loristan. The ceremonious service even extended itself 
to The Ratwho appeared to have taken a new place in his mind. 
He also seemed now to be a person to be waited upon and replied 
to with dignity and formal respect. 
When the evening meal was servedLazarus drew out Loristan's 
chair at the head of the table and stood behind it with a 
majestic air. 
``Sir'' he said to Marco``the Master requested that you take 
his seat at the table until--while he is not with you.'' 
Marco took the seat in silence. 
At two o'clock in the morningwhen the roaring road was still
the light from the street lampshining into the small bedroom
fell on two pale boy faces. The Rat sat up on his sofa bed in 
the old way with his hands clasped round his knees. Marco lay 
flat on his hard pillow. Neither of them had been to sleep and 
yet they had not talked a great deal. Each had secretly guessed 
a good deal of what the other did not say. 
``There is one thing we must remember'' Marco had saidearly in 
the night. ``We must not be afraid.'' 
``No'' answered The Ratalmost fiercely``we must not be 
afraid.'' 
``We are tired; we came back expecting to be able to tell it all 
to him. We have always been looking forward to that. We never 
thought once that he might be gone. And he WAS gone. Did you 
feel as if--'' he turned towards the sofa``as if something had 
struck you on the chest?'' 
``Yes'' The Rat answered heavily. ``Yes.'' 
``We weren't ready'' said Marco. ``He had never gone before; 
but we ought to have known he might some day be--called. He went 
because he was called. He told us to wait. We don't know what 
we are waiting forbut we know that we must not be afraid. To 
let ourselves be AFRAID would be breaking the Law.'' 
``The Law!'' groaned The Ratdropping his head on his hands
``I'd forgotten about it.'' 
``Let us remember it'' said Marco. ``This is the time. `Hate 
not. FEAR not!' '' He repeated the last words again and again. 
``Fear not! Fear not'' he said. ``NOTHING can harm him.'' 
The Rat lifted his headand looked at the bed sideways. 
``Did you think--'' he said slowly--``did you EVER think that 
perhaps HE knew where the descendant of the Lost Prince was?'' 
Marco answered even more slowly. 
``If any one knew--surely he might. He has known so much'' he 
said. 
``Listen to this!'' broke forth The Rat. ``I believe he has gone 
to TELL the people. If he does--if he could show them--all the 
country would run mad with joy. It wouldn't be only the Secret 
Party. All Samavia would rise and follow any flag he chose to 
raise. They've prayed for the Lost Prince for five hundred 
yearsand if they believed they'd got him once morethey'd 
fight like madmen for him. But there would not be any one to 
fight. They'd ALL want the same thing! If they could see the 
man with Ivor's blood in his veinsthey'd feel he had come back 
to them--risen from the dead. They'd believe it!'' 
He beat his fists together in his frenzy of excitement. ``It's 
the time! It's the time!'' he cried. ``No man could let such a 
chance go by! He MUST tell them--he MUST. That MUST be what he's 
gone for. He knows --he knows--he's always known!'' And he 
threw himself back on his sofa and flung his arms over his face
lying there panting. 
``If it is the time'' said Marco in a lowstrained voice--``if 
it isand he knows--he will tell them.'' And he threw his arms 
up over his own face and lay quite still. 
Neither of them said another wordand the street lamp shone in 
on them as if it were waiting for something to happen. But 
nothing happened. In time they were asleep. 
'TWIXT NIGHT AND MORNING 
After thisthey waited. They did not know what they waited for
nor could they guess even vaguely how the waiting would end. All 
that Lazarus could tell them he told. He would have been willing 
to stand respectfully for hours relating to Marco the story of 
how the period of their absence had passed for his Master and 
himself. He told how Loristan had spoken each day of his son
how he had often been pale with anxiousnesshow in the evenings 
he had walked to and fro in his roomdeep in thoughtas he 
looked down unseeingly at the carpet. 
``He permitted me to talk of yousir'' Lazarus said. ``I saw 
that he wished to hear your name often. I reminded him of the 
times when you had been so young that most children of your age 
would have been in the hands of nursesand yet you were strong 
and silent and sturdy and traveled with us as if you were not a 
child at all--never crying when you were tired and were not 
properly fed. As if you understood--as if you understood'' he 
addedproudly. ``Ifthrough the power of God a creature can be 
a man at six years oldyou were that one. Many a dark day I 
have looked into your solemnwatching eyesand have been half 
afraid; because that a child should answer one's gaze so gravely 
seemed almost an unearthly thing.'' 
``The chief thing I remember of those days'' said Marco``is 
that he was with meand that whenever I was hungry or tiredI 
knew he must betoo.'' 
The feeling that they were ``waiting'' was so intense that it 
filled the days with strangeness. When the postman's knock was 
heard at the dooreach of them endeavored not to start. A 
letter might some day come which would tell them--they did not 
know what. But no letters came. When they went out into the 
streetsthey found themselves hurrying on their way back in 
spite of themselves. Something might have happened. Lazarus 
read the papers faithfullyand in the evening told Marco and The 
Rat all the news it was ``well that they should hear.'' But the 
disorders of Samavia had ceased to occupy much space. They had 
become an old storyand after the excitement of the 
assassination of Michael Maranovitch had died outthere seemed 
to be a lull in events. Michael's son had not dared to try to 
take his father's placeand there were rumors that he also had 
been killed. The head of the Iarovitch had declared himself king 
but had not been crowned because of disorders in his own party. 
The country seemed existing in a nightmare of sufferingfamine 
and suspense. 
``Samavia is `waiting' too'' The Rat broke forth one night as 
they talked together``but it won't wait long--it can't. If I 
were a Samavian and in Samavia--'' 
``My father is a Samavian and he is in Samavia'' Marco's grave 
young voice interposed. The Rat flushed red as he realized what 
he had said. ``What a fool I am!'' he groaned. ``I--I beg your 
pardon-- sir.'' He stood up when he said the last words and 
added the ``sir'' as if he suddenly realized that there was a 
distance between them which was something akin to the distance 
between youth and maturity-- but yet was not the same. 
``You are a good Samavian but--you forget'' was Marco's answer. 
Lazarus' intense grimness increased with each day that passed. 
The ceremonious respectfulness of his manner toward Marco 
increased also. It seemed as if the more anxious he felt the 
more formal and stately his bearing became. It was as though he 
braced his own courage by doing the smallest things life in the 
back sitting- room required as if they were of the dignity of 
services performed in a much larger place and under much more 
imposing circumstances. The Rat found himself feeling almost as 
if he were an equerry in a courtand that dignity and ceremony 
were necessary on his own part. He began to experience a sense 
of being somehow a person of rankfor whom doors were opened 
grandly and who had vassals at his command. The watchful 
obedience of fifty vassals embodied itself in the manner of 
Lazarus. 
``I am glad'' The Rat said oncereflectively``thatafter all 
my father was once--different. It makes it easier to learn 
things perhaps. If he had not talked to me about people 
who--wellwho had never seen places like Bone Court--this might 
have been harder for me to understand.'' 
When at last they managed to call The Squad togetherand went to 
spend a morning at the Barracks behind the churchyardthat body 
of armed men stared at their commander in great and amazed 
uncertainty. They felt that something had happened to him. They 
did not know what had happenedbut it was some experience which 
had made him mysteriously different. He did not look like Marco
but in some extraordinary way he seemed more akin to him. They 
only knew that some necessity in Loristan's affairs had taken the 
two away from London and the Game. Now they had come backand 
they seemed older. 
At firstThe Squad felt awkward and shuffled its feet 
uncomfortably. After the first greetings it did not know 
exactly what to say. It was Marco who saved the situation. 
``Drill us first'' he said to The Rat``then we can talk about 
the Game.'' 
`` 'Tention!'' shouted The Ratmagnificently. And then they 
forgot everything else and sprang into line. After the drill was 
endedand they sat in a circle on the broken flagsthe Game 
became more resplendent than it had ever been. 
``I've had time to read and work out new things'' The Rat said. 
``Reading is like traveling.'' 
Marco himself sat and listenedenthralled by the adroitness of 
the imagination he displayed. Without revealing a single 
dangerous fact he built upof their journeyings and experiences
a totally new structure of adventures which would have fired the 
whole being of any group of lads. It was safe to describe places 
and peopleand he so described them that The Squad squirmed in 
its delight at feeling itself marching in a procession attending 
the Emperor in Vienna; standing in line before palaces; climbing
with knapsacks strapped tightup precipitous mountain roads; 
defending mountain- fortresses; and storming Samavian castles. 
The Squad glowed and exulted. The Rat glowed and exulted 
himself. Marco watched his sharp-featuredburning-eyed face 
with wonder and admiration. This strange power of making things 
alive washe knewwhat his father would call ``genius.'' 
``Let's take the oath of 'legiance again'' shouted Cadwhen the 
Game was over for the morning. 
``The papers never said nothin' more about the Lost Princebut 
we are all for him yet! Let's take it!'' So they stood in line 
againMarco at the headand renewed their oath. 
``The sword in my hand--for Samavia! 
``The heart in my breast--for Samavia! 
``The swiftness of my sightthe thought of my brainthe life of 
my life--for Samavia. 
``Here grow twelve men--for Samavia. 
``God be thanked!'' 
It was more solemn than it had been the first time. The Squad 
felt it tremendously. Both Cad and Ben were conscious that 
thrills ran down their spines into their boots. When Marco and 
The Rat left themthey first stood at salute and then broke out 
into a ringing cheer. 
On their way homeThe Rat asked Marco a question. 
``Did you see Mrs. Beedle standing at the top of the basement 
steps and looking after us when we went out this morning?'' 
Mrs. Beedle was the landlady of the lodgings at No. 7 Philibert 
Place. She was a mysterious and dusty femalewho lived in the 
``cellar kitchen'' part of the house and was seldom seen by her 
lodgers. 
``Yes'' answered Marco``I have seen her two or three times 
latelyand I do not think I ever saw her before. My father has 
never seen herthough Lazarus says she used to watch him round 
corners. Why is she suddenly so curious about us?'' 
``I'd like to know'' said The Rat. ``I've been trying to work 
it out. Ever since we came backshe's been peeping round the 
door of the kitchen stairsor over balustradesor through the 
cellar- kitchen windows. I believe she wants to speak to you
and knows Lazarus won't let her if he catches her at it. When 
Lazarus is aboutshe always darts back.'' 
``What does she want to say?'' said Marco. 
``I'd like to know'' said The Rat again. 
When they reached No. 7 Philibert Placethey found outbecause 
when the door opened they saw at the top of cellar-kitchen stairs 
at the end of the passagethe mysterious Mrs. Beedlein her 
dusty black dress and with a dusty black cap onevidently having 
that minute mounted from her subterranean hiding-place. She had 
come up the steps so quickly that Lazarus had not yet seen her. 
``Young Master Loristan!'' she called out authoritatively. 
Lazarus wheeled about fiercely. 
``Silence!'' he commanded. ``How dare you address the young 
Master?'' 
She snapped her fingers at himand marched forward folding her 
arms tightly. ``You mind your own business'' she said. ``It's 
young Master Loristan I'm speaking tonot his servant. It's 
time he was talked to about this.'' 
``Silencewoman!'' shouted Lazarus. 
``Let her speak'' said Marco. ``I want to hear. What is it you 
wish to sayMadam? My father is not here.'' 
``That's just what I want to find out about'' put in the woman. 
``When is he coming back?'' 
``I do not know'' answered Marco. 
``That's it'' said Mrs. Beedle. ``You're old enough to 
understand that two big lads and a big fellow like that can't 
have food and lodgin's for nothing. You may say you don't live 
high--and you don't--but lodgin's are lodgin's and rent is rent. 
If your father's coming back and you can tell me whenI mayn't 
be obliged to let the rooms over your heads; but I know too much 
about foreigners to let bills run when they are out of sight. 
Your father's out of sight. He'' jerking her head towards 
Lazarus``paid me for last week. How do I know he will pay me 
for this week!'' 
``The money is ready'' roared Lazarus. 
The Rat longed to burst forth. He knew what people in Bone Court 
said to a woman like that; he knew the exact words and phrases. 
But they were not words and phrases an aide-de-camp might deliver 
himself of in the presence of his superior officer; they were not 
words and phrases an equerry uses at court. He dare not ALLOW 
himself to burst forth. He stood with flaming eyes and a flaming 
faceand bit his lips till they bled. He wanted to strike with 
his crutches. The son of Stefan Loristan! The Bearer of the 
Sign! There sprang up before his furious eyes the picture of the 
luridly lighted cavern and the frenzied crowd of men kneeling at 
this same boy's feetkissing themkissing his handshis 
garmentsthe very earth he stood uponworshipping himwhile 
above the altar the kingly young face looked on with the nimbus 
of light like a halo above it. If he dared speak his mind now
he felt he could have endured it better. But being an 
aide-de-camp he could not. 
``Do you want the money now?'' asked Marco. ``It is only the 
beginning of the week and we do not owe it to you until the week 
is over. Is it that you want to have it now?'' 
Lazarus had become deadly pale. He looked huge in his furyand 
he looked dangerous. 
``Young Master'' he said slowlyin a voice as deadly as his 
pallorand he actually spoke low``this woman--'' 
Mrs. Beedle drew back towards the cellar-kitchen steps. 
``There's police outside'' she shrilled. ``Young Master 
Loristanorder him to stand back.'' 
``No one will hurt you'' said Marco. ``If you have the money 
hereLazarusplease give it to me.'' 
Lazarus literally ground his teeth. But he drew himself up and 
saluted with ceremony. He put his hand in his breast pocket and 
produced an old leather wallet. There were but a few coins in 
it. He pointed to a gold one. 
``I obey yousir--since I must--'' he saidbreathing hard. 
``That one will pay her for the week.'' 
Marco took out the sovereign and held it out to the woman. 
``You hear what he says'' he said. ``At the end of this week if 
there is not enough to pay for the nextwe will go.'' 
Lazarus looked so like a hyenaonly held back from springing by 
chains of steelthat the dusty Mrs. Beedle was afraid to take 
the money. 
``If you say that I shall not lose itI'll wait until the week's 
ended'' she said. ``You're nothing but a ladbut you're like 
your father. You've got a way that a body can trust. If he was 
here and said he hadn't the money but he'd have it in timeI'd 
wait if it was for a month. He'd pay it if he said he would. 
But he's gone; and two boys and a fellow like that one don't seem 
much to depend on. But I'll trust YOU.'' 
``Be good enough to take it'' said Marco. And he put the coin 
in her hand and turned into the back sitting-room as if he did 
not see her. 
The Rat and Lazarus followed him. 
``Is there so little money left?'' said Marco. ``We have always 
had very little. When we had less than usualwe lived in poorer 
places and were hungry if it was necessary. We know how to go 
hungry. One does not die of it.'' 
The big eyes under Lazarus' beetling brows filled with tears. 
``Nosir'' he said``one does not die of hunger. But the 
insult --the insult! That is not endurable.'' 
``She would not have spoken if my father had been here'' Marco 
said. ``And it is true that boys like us have no money. Is 
there enough to pay for another week?'' 
``Yessir'' answered Lazarusswallowing hard as if he had a 
lump in his throat``perhaps enough for two--if we eat but 
little. If--if the Master would accept money from those who 
would give ithe would alway have had enough. But how could 
such a one as he? How could he? When he went awayhe 
thought--he thought that --'' but there he stopped himself 
suddenly. 
``Never mind'' said Marco. ``Never mind. We will go away the 
day we can pay no more.'' 
``I can go out and sell newspapers'' said The Rat's sharp voice. 
``I've done it before. Crutches help you to sell them. The 
platform would sell 'em faster still. I'll go out on the 
platform.'' 
``I can sell newspaperstoo'' said Marco. 
Lazarus uttered an exclamation like a groan. 
``Sir'' he cried``nono! Am I not here to go out and look 
for work? I can carry loads. I can run errands.'' 
``We will all three begin to see what we can do'' Marco said. 
Then--exactly as had happened on the day of their return from 
their journey--there arose in the road outside the sound of 
newsboys shouting. This time the outcry seemed even more excited 
than before. The boys were running and yelling and there seemed 
more of them than usual. And above all other words was heard 
``Samavia! Samavia!'' But to-day The Rat did not rush to the 
door at the first cry. He stood still--for several seconds they 
all three stood still --listening. Afterwards each one 
remembered and told the others that he had stood still because 
some strangestrong feeling held him WAITING as if to hear some 
great thing. 
It was Lazarus who went out of the room first and The Rat and 
Marco followed him. 
One of the upstairs lodgers had run down in haste and opened the 
door to buy newspapers and ask questions. The newsboys were wild 
with excitement and danced about as they shouted. The piece of 
news they were yelling had evidently a popular quality. 
The lodger bought two papers and was handing out coppers to a lad 
who was talking loud and fast. 
``Here's a go!'' he was saying. ``A Secret Party's risen up and 
taken Samavia! 'Twixt night and mornin' they done it! That 
there Lost Prince descendant 'as turned upan' they've CROWNED 
him--'twixt night and mornin' they done it! Clapt 'is crown on 
'is 'eadso's they'd lose no time.'' And off he bolted
shouting`` 'Cendant of Lost Prince! 'Cendant of Lost Prince 
made King of Samavia!'' 
It was then that Lazarusforgetting even ceremonybolted also. 
He bolted back to the sitting-roomrushed inand the door fell 
to behind him. 
Marco and The Rat found it shut whenhaving secured a newspaper
they went down the passage. At the closed doorMarco stopped. 
He did not turn the handle. From the inside of the room there 
came the sound of big convulsive sobs and passionate Samavian 
words of prayer and worshipping gratitude. 
``Let us wait'' Marco saidtrembling a little. ``He will not 
want any one to see him. Let us wait.'' 
His black pits of eyes looked immenseand he stood at his 
tallestbut he was trembling slightly from head to foot. The 
Rat had begun to shakeas if from an ague. His face was 
scarcely human in its fierce unboyish emotion. 
``Marco! Marco!'' his whisper was a cry. ``That was what he 
went for--BECAUSE HE KNEW!'' 
``Yes'' answered Marco``that was what he went for.'' And his 
voice was unsteadyas his body was. 
Presently the sobs inside the room choked themselves back 
suddenly. Lazarus had remembered. They had guessed he had been 
leaning against the wall during his outburst. Now it was evident 
that he stood uprightprobably shocked at the forgetfulness of 
his frenzy. 
So Marco turned the handle of the door and went into the room. 
He shut the door behind himand they all three stood together. 
When the Samavian gives way to his emotionshe is emotional 
indeed. Lazarus looked as if a storm had swept over him. He had 
choked back his sobsbut tears still swept down his cheeks. 
``Sir'' he said hoarsely``your pardon! It was as if a 
convulsion seized me. I forgot everything--even my duty. 
Pardonpardon!'' And there on the worn carpet of the dingy back 
sitting-room in the Marylebone Roadhe actually went on one knee 
and kissed the boy's hand with adoration. 
``You mustn't ask pardon'' said Marco. ``You have waited so 
longgood friend. You have given your life as my father has. 
You have known all the suffering a boy has not lived long enough 
to understand. Your big heart--your faithful heart--'' his voice 
broke and he stood and looked at him with an appeal which seemed 
to ask him to remember his boyhood and understand the rest. 
``Don't kneel'' he said next. ``You mustn't kneel.'' And 
Lazaruskissing his hand againrose to his feet. 
``Now--we shall HEAR!'' said Marco. ``Now the waiting will soon 
be over.'' 
``Yessir. Nowwe shall receive commands!'' Lazarus answered. 
The Rat held out the newspapers. 
``May we read them yet?'' he asked. 
``Until further orderssir'' said Lazarus hurriedly and 
apologetically --``until further ordersit is still better that 
I should read them first.'' 
THE GAME IS AT AN END 
So long as the history of Europe is written and readthe 
unparalleled story of the Rising of the Secret Party in Samavia 
will stand out as one of its most startling and romantic records. 
Every detail connected with the astonishing episodefrom 
beginning to endwas romantic even when it was most productive 
of realistic results. When it is relatedit always begins with 
the story of the tall and kingly Samavian youth who walked out of 
the palace in the early morning sunshine singing the herdsmen's 
song of beauty of old days. Then comes the outbreak of the 
ruined and revolting populace; then the legend of the morning on 
the mountain sideand the old shepherd coming out of his cave 
and finding the apparently dead body of the beautiful young 
hunter. Then the secret nursing in the cavern; then the jolting 
cart piled with sheepskins crossing the frontierand ending its 
journey at the barred entrance of the monastery and leaving its 
mysterious burden behind. And then the bitter hate and struggle 
of dynastiesand the handful of shepherds and herdsmen meeting 
in their cavern and binding themselves and their unborn sons and 
sons' sons by an oath never to be broken. Then the passing of 
generations and the slaughter of peoples and the changing of 
kings--and always that oath rememberedand the Forgers of the 
Swordat their secret workhidden in forests and caves. Then 
the strange story of the uncrowned kings whowandering in other 
landslived and died in silence and seclusionoften laboring 
with their hands for their daily breadbut never forgetting that 
they must be kingsand ready--even though Samavia never called. 
Perhaps the whole story would fill too many volumes to admit of 
it ever being told fully. 
But history makes the growing of the Secret Party clear--though 
it seems almost to cease to be historyin spite of its efforts 
to be brief and speak only of dull factswhen it is forced to 
deal with the Bearing of the Sign by two mere boyswhobeing 
blown as unremarked as any two grains of dust across Europelit 
the Lamp whose flame so flared up to the high heavens that as if 
from the earth itself there sprang forth Samavians by the 
thousands ready to feed it-- Iarovitch and Maranovitch swept 
aside forever and only Samavians remaining to cry aloud in ardent 
praise and worship of the God who had brought back to them their 
Lost Prince. The battle-cry of his name had ended every battle. 
Swords fell from hands because swords were not needed. The 
Iarovitch fled in terror and dismay; the Maranovitch were nowhere 
to be found. Between night and morningas the newsboy had said
the standard of Ivor was raised and waved from palace and citadel 
alike. From mountainforest and plainfrom cityvillage and 
townits followers flocked to swear allegiance; broken and 
wounded legions staggered along the roads to join and kneel to 
it; women and children followedweeping with joy and chanting 
songs of praise. The Powers held out their scepters to the 
lately prostrate and ignored country. Train-loads of food and 
supplies of all things needed began to cross the frontier; the 
aid of nations was bestowed. Samaviaat peace to till its land
to raise its flocksto mine its oreswould be able to pay all 
back. Samavia in past centuries had been rich enough to make 
great loansand had stored such harvests as warring countries 
had been glad to call upon. The story of the crowning of the 
King had been the wildest of all--the multitude of ecstatic 
peoplefamishedin ragsand many of them weak with wounds
kneeling at his feetprayingas their one salvation and 
securitythat he would go attended by them to their bombarded 
and broken cathedraland at its high altar let the crown be 
placed upon his headso that even those who perhaps must die of 
their past sufferings would at least have paid their poor homage 
to the King Ivor who would rule their children and bring back to 
Samavia her honor and her peace. 
``Ivor! Ivor!'' they chanted like a prayer--``Ivor! Ivor!'' in 
their housesby the roadsidein the streets. 
``The story of the Coronation in the shattered Cathedralwhose 
roof had been torn to fragments by bombs'' said an important 
London paper``reads like a legend of the Middle Ages. But
upon the wholethere is in Samavia's national character
something of the mediaevalstill.'' 
Lazarushaving bought and read in his top floor room every 
newspaper recording the details which had reached London
returned to report almost verbatimstanding erect before Marco
the eyes under his shaggy brows sometimes flaming with 
exultationsometimes filled with a rush of tears. He could not 
be made to sit down. His whole big body seemed to have become 
rigid with magnificence. Meeting Mrs. Beedle in the passagehe 
strode by her with an air so thunderous that she turned and 
scuttled back to her cellar kitchenalmost falling down the 
stone steps in her nervous terror. In such a moodhe was not a 
person to face without something like awe. 
In the middle of the nightThe Rat suddenly spoke to Marco as if 
he knew that he was awake and would hear him. 
``He has given all his life to Samavia!'' he said. ``When you 
traveled from country to countryand lived in holes and corners
it was because by doing it he could escape spiesand see the 
people who must be made to understand. No one else could have 
made them listen. An emperor would have begun to listen when he 
had seen his face and heard his voice. And he could be silent
and wait for the right time to speak. He could keep still when 
other men could not. He could keep his face still--and his 
hands--and his eyes. Now all Samavia knows what he has doneand 
that he has been the greatest patriot in the world. We both saw 
what Samavians were like that night in the cavern. They will go 
mad with joy when they see his face!'' 
``They have seen it now'' said Marcoin a low voice from his 
bed. 
Then there was a long silencethough it was not quite silence 
because The Rat's breathing was so quick and hard. 
``He--must have been at that coronation!'' he said at last. 
``The King--what will the King do to--repay him?'' 
Marco did not answer. His breathing could be heard also. His 
mind was picturing that same coronation--the shatteredroofless 
cathedralthe ruins of the ancient and magnificent high altar
the multitude of kneelingfamine-scourged peoplethe 
battle-wornwounded and bandaged soldiery! And the King! And 
his father! Where had his father stood when the King was 
crowned? Surelyhe had stood at the King's right handand the 
people had adored and acclaimed them equally! 
``King Ivor!'' he murmured as if he were in a dream. ``King 
Ivor!'' 
The Rat started up on his elbow. 
``You will see him'' he cried out. ``He's not a dream any 
longer. The Game is not a game now--and it is ended--it is won! 
It was real--HE was real! MarcoI don't believe you hear.'' 
``YesI do'' answered Marco``but it is almost more a dream 
than when it was one.'' 
``The greatest patriot in the world is like a king himself!'' 
raved The Rat. ``If there is no bigger honor to give himhe 
will be made a prince--and Commander-in-Chief--and Prime 
Minister! Can't you hear those Samavians shoutingand singing
and praying? You'll see it all! Do you remember the mountain 
climber who was going to save the shoes he made for the Bearer of 
the Sign? He said a great day might come when one could show 
them to the people. It's come! He'll show them! I know how 
they'll take it!'' His voice suddenly dropped--as if it dropped 
into a pit. ``You'll see it all. But I shall not.'' 
Then Marco awoke from his dream and lifted his head. ``Why 
not?'' he demanded. It sounded like a demand. 
``Because I know better than to expect it!'' The Rat groaned. 
``You've taken me a long waybut you can't take me to the palace 
of a king. I'm not such a fool as to think thateven of your 
father--'' 
He broke off because Marco did more than lift his head. He sat 
upright. 
``You bore the Sign as much as I did'' he said. ``We bore it 
together.'' 
``Who would have listened to ME?'' cried The Rat. ``YOU were the 
son of Stefan Loristan.'' 
``You were the friend of his son'' answered Marco. ``You went 
at the command of Stefan Loristan. You were the ARMY of the son 
of Stefan Loristan. That I have told you. Where I goyou will 
go. We will say no more of this--not one word.'' 
And he lay down again in the silence of a prince of the blood. 
And The Rat knew that he meant what he saidand that Stefan 
Loristan also would mean it. And because he was a boyhe began 
to wonder what Mrs. Beedle would do when she heard what had 
happened--what had been happening all the time a tallshabby 
``foreigner'' had lived in her dingy back sitting-roomand been 
closely watched lest he should go away without paying his rent
as shabby foreigners sometimes did. The Rat saw himself managing 
to poise himself very erect on his crutches while he told her 
that the shabby foreigner was--wellwas at least the friend of a 
Kingand had given him his crown--and would be made a prince and 
a Commander-in-Chief--and a Prime Minister--because there was no 
higher rank or honor to give him. And his son--whom she had 
insulted-- was Samavia's idol because he had borne the Sign. And 
also that if she were in Samaviaand Marco chose to do it he 
could batter her wretched lodging-house to the ground and put her 
in a prison--``and serve her jolly well right!'' 
The next day passedand the next; and then there came a letter. 
It was from Loristanand Marco turned pale when Lazarus handed 
it to him. Lazarus and The Rat went out of the room at onceand 
left him to read it alone. It was evidently not a long letter
because it was not many minutes before Marco called them again 
into the room. 
``In a few daysmessengers--friends of my father's--will come to 
take us to Samavia. You and I and Lazarus are to go'' he said 
to The Rat. 
``God be thanked!'' said Lazarus. ``God be thanked!'' 
Before the messengers cameit was the end of the week. Lazarus 
had packed their few belongingsand on Saturday Mrs. Beedle was 
to be seen hovering at the top of the celler stepswhen Marco 
and The Rat left the back sitting-room to go out. 
``You needn't glare at me!'' she said to Lazaruswho stood 
glowering at the door which he had opened for them. ``Young 
Master LoristanI want to know if you've heard when your father 
is coming back?'' 
``He will not come back'' said Marco. 
``He won'twon't he? Wellhow about next week's rent?'' said 
Mrs. Beedle. ``Your man's been packing upI notice. He's not 
got much to carry awaybut it won't pass through that front door 
until I've got what's owing me. People that can pack easy think 
they can get away easyand they'll bear watching. The week's up 
to-day.'' 
Lazarus wheeled and faced her with a furious gesture. ``Get back 
to your cellarwoman'' he commanded. ``Get back under ground 
and stay there. Look at what is stopping before your miserable 
gate.'' 
A carriage was stopping--a very perfect carriage of dark brown. 
The coachman and footman wore dark brown and gold liveriesand 
the footman had leaped down and opened the door with respectful 
alacrity. ``They are friends of the Master's come to pay their 
respects to his son'' said Lazarus. ``Are their eyes to be 
offended by the sight of you?'' 
``Your money is safe'' said Marco. ``You had better leave us.'' 
Mrs. Beedle gave a sharp glance at the two gentlemen who had 
entered the broken gate. They were of an order which did not 
belong to Philibert Place. They looked as if the carriage and 
the dark brown and gold liveries were every-day affairs to them. 
``At all eventsthey're two grown menand not two boys without 
a penny'' she said. ``If they're your father's friendsthey'll 
tell me whether my rent's safe or not.'' 
The two visitors were upon the threshold. They were both men of 
a certain self-contained dignity of type; and when Lazarus opened 
wide the doorthey stepped into the shabby entrance hall as if 
they did not see it. They looked past its dinginessand past 
Lazarusand The Ratand Mrs. Beedle--THROUGH themas it 
were--at Marco. 
He advanced towards them at once. 
``You come from my father!'' he saidand gave his hand first to 
the elder manthen to the younger. 
``Yeswe come from your father. I am Baron Rastka--and this is 
the Count Vorversk'' said the elder manbowing. 
``If they're barons and countsand friends of your father's
they are well-to-do enough to be responsible for you'' said Mrs. 
Beedlerather fiercelybecause she was somewhat over-awed and 
resented the fact. ``It's a matter of next week's rent
gentlemen. I want to know where it's coming from.'' 
The elder man looked at her with a swift cold glance. He did not 
speak to herbut to Lazarus. ``What is she doing here?'' he 
demanded. 
Marco answered him. ``She is afraid we cannot pay our rent'' he 
said. ``It is of great importance to her that she should be 
sure.'' 
``Take her away'' said the gentleman to Lazarus. He did not 
even glance at her. He drew something from his coat-pocket and 
handed it to the old soldier. ``Take her away'' he repeated. 
And because it seemed as if she were not any longer a person at 
allMrs. Beedle actually shuffled down the passage to the 
cellar-kitchen steps. Lazarus did not leave her until hetoo
had descended into the cellar kitchenwhere he stood and towered 
above her like an infuriated giant. 
``To-morrow he will be on his way to Samaviamiserable woman!'' 
he said. ``Before he goesit would be well for you to implore 
his pardon.'' 
But Mrs. Beedle's point of view was not his. She had recovered 
some of her breath. 
``I don't know where Samavia is'' she ragedas she struggled to 
set her dustyblack cap straight. ``I'll warrant it's one of 
these little foreign countries you can scarcely see on the 
map--and not a decent English town in it! He can go as soon as 
he likesso long as he pays his rent before he does it. 
Samaviaindeed! You talk as if he was Buckingham Palace!'' 
``THE SON OF STEFAN LORISTAN '' 
When a party composed of two boys attended by a big soldierly 
man-servant and accompanied by two distinguished-lookingelderly 
menof a marked foreign typeappeared on the platform of 
Charing Cross Station they attracted a good deal of attention. 
In factthe good looks and strongwell-carried body of the 
handsome lad with the thick black hair would have caused eyes to 
turn towards him even if he had not seemed to be regarded as so 
special a charge by those who were with him. But in a country 
where people are accustomed to seeing a certain manner and 
certain forms observed in the case of persons--however young--who 
are set apart by the fortune of rank and distinctionand where 
the populace also rather enjoys the sight of such demeanorit 
was inevitable that more than one quick-sighted looker-on should 
comment on the fact that this was not an ordinary group of 
individuals. 
``See that finebig lad over there!'' said a workmanwhose 
headwith a pipe in its mouthstuck out of a third-class 
smoking carriage window. ``He's some sort of a young swellI'll 
lay a shillin'! Take a look at him'' to his mate inside. 
The mate took a look. The pair were of the decentpolytechniceducated 
typeand were shrewd at observation. 
``Yeshe's some sort of young swell'' he summed him up. ``But 
he's not English by a long chalk. He must be a young Turkor 
Russiansent over to be educated. His suite looks like it. All 
but the ferret-faced chap on crutches. Wonder what he is!'' 
A good-natured looking guard was passingand the first man 
hailed him. 
``Have we got any swells traveling with us this morning?'' he 
askedjerking his head towards the group. ``That looks like it. 
Any one leaving Windsor or Sandringham to cross from Dover 
to-day?'' 
The man looked at the group curiously for a moment and then shook 
his head. 
``They do look like something or other'' he answered``but no 
one knows anything about them. Everybody's safe in Buckingham 
Palace and Marlborough House this week. No one either going or 
coming.'' 
No observerit is truecould have mistaken Lazarus for an 
ordinary attendant escorting an ordinary charge. If silence had 
not still been strictly the orderhe could not have restrained 
himself. As it washe bore himself like a grenadierand stood 
by Marco as if across his dead body alone could any one approach 
the lad. 
``Until we reach Melzarr'' he had said with passion to the two 
gentlemen--``until I can stand before my Master and behold him 
embrace his son--BEHOLD him--I implore that I may not lose sight 
of him night or day. On my kneesI implore that I may travel
armedat his side. I am but his servantand have no right to 
occupy a place in the same carriage. But put me anywhere. I 
will be deafdumbblind to all but himself. Only permit me to 
be near enough to give my life if it is needed. Let me say to 
my Master`I never left him.' '' 
``We will find a place for you'' the elder man said``and if 
you are so anxiousyou may sleep across his threshold when we 
spend the night at a hotel.'' 
``I will not sleep!'' said Lazarus. ``I will watch. Suppose 
there should be demons of Maranovitch loose and infuriated in 
Europe? Who knows!'' 
``The Maranovitch and Iarovitch who have not already sworn 
allegiance to King Ivor are dead on battlefields. The remainder 
are now Fedorovitch and praising God for their King'' was the 
answer Baron Rastka made him. 
But Lazarus kept his guard unbroken. When he occupied the next 
compartment to the one in which Marco traveledhe stood in the 
corridor throughout the journey. When they descended at any 
point to change trainshe followed close at the boy's heelshis 
fierce eyes on every side at once and his hand on the weapon 
hidden in his broad leather belt. When they stopped to rest in 
some cityhe planted himself in a chair by the bedroom door of 
his chargeand if he slept he was not aware that nature had 
betrayed him into doing so. 
If the journey made by the young Bearers of the Sign had been a 
strange onethis was strange by its very contrast. Throughout 
that pilgrimagetwo uncared-for waifs in worn clothes had 
traveled from one place to anothersometimes in third- or 
fourth-class continental railroad carriagessometimes in jolting 
diligencessometimes in peasants' cartssometimes on foot by 
side roads and mountain pathsand forest ways. Nowtwo 
well-dressed boys in the charge of two men of the class whose 
orders are obeyedjourneyed in compartments reserved for them
their traveling appurtenances supplying every comfort that luxury 
could provide. 
The Rat had not known that there were people who traveled in such 
a manner; that wants could be so perfectly foreseen; that 
railroad officialsporters at stationsthe staff of 
restaurantscould be by magic transformed into active and eager 
servants. To lean against the upholstered back of a railway 
carriage and in luxurious ease look through the window at passing 
beautiesand then to find books at your elbow and excellent 
meals appearing at regular hoursthese unknown perfections made 
it necessary for him at times to pull himself together and give 
all his energies to believing that he was quite awake. Awake he 
wasand with much on his mind ``to work out''--so muchindeed
that on the first day of the journey he had decided to give up 
the struggleand wait until fate made clear to him such things 
as he was to be allowed to understand of the mystery of Stefan 
Loristan. 
What he realized most clearly was that the fact that the son of 
Stefan Loristan was being escorted in private state to the 
country his father had given his life's work towas never for a 
moment forgotten. The Baron Rastka and Count Vorversk were of 
the dignity and courteous reserve which marks men of distinction. 
Marco was not a mere boy to themhe was the son of Stefan 
Loristan; and they were Samavians. They watched over himnot as 
Lazarus didbut with a gravity and forethought which somehow 
seemed to encircle him with a rampart. Without any air of 
subserviencethey constituted themselves his attendants. His 
comforthis pleasureeven his entertainmentwere their private 
care. The Rat felt sure they intended thatif possiblehe 
should enjoy his journeyand that he should not be fatigued by 
it. They conversed with him as The Rat had not known that men 
ever conversed with boys--until he had met Loristan. It was 
plain that they knew what he would be most interested inand 
that they were aware he was as familiar with the history of 
Samavia as they were themselves. When he showed a disposition to 
hear of events which had occurredthey were as prompt to follow 
his lead as they would have been to follow the lead of a man. 
ThatThe Rat argued with himselfwas because Marco had lived so 
intimately with his father that his life had been more like a 
man's than a boy's and had trained him in mature thinking. He 
was very quiet during the journeyand The Rat knew he was 
thinking all the time. 
The night before they reached Melzarrthey slept at a town some 
hours distant from the capital. They arrived at midnight and 
went to a quiet hotel. 
``To-morrow'' said Marcowhen The Rat had left him for the 
night``to-morrowwe shall see him! God be thanked!'' 
``God be thanked!'' said The Ratalso. And each saluted the 
other before they parted. 
In the morningLazarus came into the bedroom with an air so 
solemn that it seemed as if the garments he carried in his hands 
were part of some religious ceremony. 
``I am at your commandsir'' he said. ``And I bring you your 
uniform.'' 
He carriedin facta richly decorated Samavian uniformand the 
first thing Marco had seen when he entered was that Lazarus 
himself was in uniform also. His was the uniform of an officer 
of the King's Body Guard. 
``The Master'' he said``asks that you wear this on your 
entrance to Melzarr. I have a uniformalsofor your 
aide-de-camp.'' 
When Rastka and Vorversk appearedthey were in uniforms also. 
It was a uniform which had a touch of the Orient in its 
picturesque splendor. A short fur-bordered mantle hung by a 
jeweled chain from the shouldersand there was much magnificent 
embroidery of color and gold. 
``Sirwe must drive quickly to the station'' Baron Rastka said 
to Marco. ``These people are excitable and patrioticand His 
Majesty wishes us to remain incognitoand avoid all chance of 
public demonstration until we reach the capital.'' They passed 
rather hurriedly through the hotel to the carriage which awaited 
them. The Rat saw that something unusual was happening in the 
place. Servants were scurrying round cornersand guests were 
coming out of their rooms and even hanging over the balustrades. 
As Marco got into his carriagehe caught sight of a boy about 
his own age who was peeping from behind a bush. Suddenly he 
darted awayand they all saw him tearing down the street towards 
the station as fast as his legs would carry him. 
But the horses were faster than he was. The party reached the 
stationand was escorted quickly to its place in a special 
saloon- carriage which awaited it. As the train made its way out 
of the stationMarco saw the boy who had run before them rush on 
to the platformwaving his arms and shouting something with wild 
delight. The people who were standing about turned to look at 
himand the next instant they had all torn off their caps and 
thrown them up in the air and were shouting also. But it was not 
possible to hear what they said. 
``We were only just in time'' said Vorverskand Baron Rastka 
nodded. 
The train went swiftlyand stopped only once before they reached 
Melzarr. This was at a small stationon the platform of which 
stood peasants with big baskets of garlanded flowers and 
evergreens. They put them on the trainand soon both Marco and 
The Rat saw that something unusual was taking place. At one 
timea man standing on the narrow outside platform of the 
carriage was plainly seen to be securing garlands and handing up 
flags to men who worked on the roof. 
``They are doing something with Samavian flags and a lot of 
flowers and green things!'' cried The Ratin excitement. 
``Sirthey are decorating the outside of the carriage'' 
Vorversk said. ``The villagers on the line obtained permission 
from His Majesty. The son of Stefan Loristan could not be 
allowed to pass their homes without their doing homage.'' 
``I understand'' said Marcohis heart thumping hard against his 
uniform. ``It is for my father's sake.'' 
At lastemboweredgarlandedand hung with waving bannersthe 
train drew in at the chief station at Melzarr. 
``Sir'' said Rastkaas they were entering``will you stand up 
that the people may see you? Those on the outskirts of the crowd 
will have the merest glimpsebut they will never forget.'' 
Marco stood up. The others grouped themselves behind him. There 
arose a roar of voiceswhich ended almost in a shriek of joy 
which was like the shriek of a tempest. Then there burst forth 
the blare of brazen instruments playing the National Hymn of 
Samaviaand mad voices joined in it. 
If Marco had not been a strong boyand long trained in selfcontrol
what he saw and heard might have been almost too much to 
be borne. When the train had come to a full stopand the door 
was thrown openeven Rastka's dignified voice was unsteady as he 
said``Sirlead the way. It is for us to follow.'' 
And Marcoerect in the doorwaystood for a momentlooking out 
upon the roaringacclaimingweepingsinging and swaying 
multitude-- and saluted just as he had saluted The Squadlooking 
just as much a boyjust as much a manjust as much a thrilling 
young human being. 
Thenat the sight of him standing soit seemed as if the crowd 
went mad--as the Forgers of the Sword had seemed to go mad on the 
night in the cavern. The tumult rose and rosethe crowd rocked
and leaptandin its frenzy of emotionthreatened to crush 
itself to death. But for the lines of soldiersthere would have 
seemed no chance for any one to pass through it alive. 
``I am the son of Stefan Loristan'' Marco said to himselfin 
order to hold himself steady. ``I am on my way to my father.'' 
Afterwardhe was moving through the line of guarding soldiers to 
the entrancewhere two great state-carriages stood; and there
outsidewaited even a huger and more frenzied crowd than that 
left behind. He saluted there againand againand againon 
all sides. It was what they had seen the Emperor do in Vienna. 
He was not an Emperorbut he was the son of Stefan Loristan who 
had brought back the King. 
``You must salutetoo'' he said to The Ratwhen they got into 
the state carriage. ``Perhaps my father has told them. It seems 
as if they knew you.'' 
The Rat had been placed beside him on the carriage seat. He was 
inwardly shuddering with a rapture of exultation which was almost 
anguish. The people were looking at him--shouting at him--surely 
it seemed like it when he looked at the faces nearest in the 
crowd. Perhaps Loristan-
``Listen!'' said Marco suddenlyas the carriage rolled on its 
way. ``They are shouting to us in Samavian`The Bearers of the 
Sign!' 
That is what they are saying now. `The Bearers of the Sign.' '' 
They were being taken to the Palace. That Baron Rastka and Count 
Vorversk had explained in the train. His Majesty wished to 
receive them. Stefan Loristan was there also. 
The city had once been noble and majestic. It was somewhat 
Orientalas its uniforms and national costumes were. There were 
domed and pillared structures of white stone and marblethere 
were great archesand city gatesand churches. But many of 
them were half in ruins through warand neglectand decay. 
They passed the half-unroofed cathedralstanding in the sunshine 
in its great squarestill in all its disaster one of the most 
beautiful structures in Europe. In the exultant crowd were still 
to be seen haggard facesmen with bandaged limbs and heads or 
hobbling on sticks and crutches. The richly colored native 
costumes were most of them worn to rags. But their wearers had 
the faces of creatures plucked from despair to be lifted to 
heaven. 
``Ivor! Ivor!'' they cried; ``Ivor! Ivor!'' and sobbed with 
rapture. 
The Palace was as wonderful in its way as the white cathedral. 
The immensely wide steps of marble were guarded by soldiers. The 
huge square in which it stood was filled with people whom the 
soldiers held in check. 
``I am his son'' Marco said to himselfas he descended from the 
state carriage and began to walk up the steps which seemed so 
enormously wide that they appeared almost like a street. Up he 
mountedstep by stepThe Rat following him. And as he turned 
from side to sideto salute those who made deep obeisance as he 
passedhe began to realize that he had seen their faces before. 
``These who are guarding the steps'' he saidquickly under his 
breath to The Rat``are the Forgers of the Sword!'' 
There were rich uniforms everywhere when he entered the palace
and people who bowed almost to the ground as he passed. He was 
very young to be confronted with such an adoring adulation and 
royal ceremony; but he hoped it would not last too longand that 
after he had knelt to the King and kissed his handhe would see 
his father and hear his voice. Just to hear his voice againand 
feel his hand on his shoulder! 
Through the vaulted corridorsto the wide-opened doors of a 
magnificent room he was led at last. The end of it seemed a long 
way off as he entered. There were many richly dressed people who 
stood in line as he passed up toward the canopied dais. He felt 
that he had grown pale with the strain of excitementand he had 
begun to feel that he must be walking in a dreamas on each side 
people bowed low and curtsied to the ground. 
He realized vaguely that the King himself was standingawaiting 
his approach. But as he advancedeach step bearing him nearer 
to the thronethe light and color about himthe strangeness and 
magnificencethe wildly joyous acclamation of the populace 
outside the palacemade him feel rather dazzledand he did not 
clearly see any one single face or thing. 
``His Majesty awaits you'' said a voice behind him which seemed 
to be Baron Rastka's. ``Are you faintsir? You look pale.'' 
He drew himself togetherand lifted his eyes. For one full 
momentafter he had so lifted themhe stood quite still and 
straightlooking into the deep beauty of the royal face. Then 
he knelt and kissed the hands held out to him--kissed them both 
with a passion of boy love and worship. 
The King had the eyes he had longed to see--the King's hands were 
those he had longed to feel again upon his shoulder--the King was 
his father! the ``Stefan Loristan'' who had been the last of 
those who had waited and labored for Samavia through five hundred 
yearsand who had lived and died kingsthough none of them till 
now had worn a crown! 
His father was the King! 
It was not that nightnor the nextnor for many nights that the 
telling of the story was completed. The people knew that their 
King and his son were rarely separated from each other; that the 
Prince's suite of apartments were connected by a private passage 
with his father's. The two were bound together by an affection 
of singular strength and meaningand their love for their people 
added to their feeling for each other. In the history of what 
their past had beenthere was a romance which swelled the 
emotional Samavian heart near to bursting. By mountain firesin 
hutsunder the starsin fields and in forestsall that was 
known of their story was told and retold a thousand timeswith 
sobs of joy and prayer breaking in upon the tale. 
But none knew it as it was told in a certain quiet but stately 
room in the palacewhere the man once known only as ``Stefan 
Loristan'' but whom history would call the first King Ivor of 
Samaviatold his share of it to the boy whom Samavians had a 
strange and superstitious worship forbecause he seemed so 
surely their Lost Prince restored in body and soul--almost the 
kingly lad in the ancient portrait--some of them half believed 
when he stood in the sunshinewith the halo about his head. 
It was a wonderful and intense storythat of the long wanderings 
and the close hiding of the dangerous secret. Among all those 
who had known that a man who was an impassioned patriot was 
laboring for Samaviaand using all the power of a great mind and 
the delicate ingenuity of a great genius to gain friends and 
favor for his unhappy countrythere had been but one who had 
known that Stefan Loristan had a claim to the Samavian throne. 
He had made no claimhe had sought--not a crown--but the final 
freedom of the nation for which his love had been a religion. 
``Not the crown!'' he said to the two young Bearers of the Sign 
as they sat at his feet like schoolboys--``not a throne. `The 
Life of my life--for Samavia.' That was what I worked for--what 
we have all worked for. If there had risen a wiser man in 
Samavia's time of needit would not have been for me to remind 
them of their Lost Prince. I could have stood aside. But no man 
arose. The crucial moment came--and the one man who knew the 
secretrevealed it. Then--Samavia calledand I answered.'' 
He put his hand on the thickblack hair of his boy's head. 
``There was a thing we never spoke of together'' he said. ``I 
believed always that your mother died of her bitter fears for me 
and the unending strain of them. She was very young and loving
and knew that there was no day when we parted that we were sure 
of seeing each other alive again. When she diedshe begged me 
to promise that your boyhood and youth should not be burdened by 
the knowledge she had found it so terrible to bear. I should 
have kept the secret from youeven if she had not so implored 
me. I had never meant that you should know the truth until you 
were a man. If I had dieda certain document would have been 
sent to you which would have left my task in your hands and made 
my plans clear. You would have known then that you also were a 
Prince Ivorwho must take up his country's burden and be ready 
when Samavia called. I tried to help you to train yourself for 
any task. You never failed me.'' 
``Your Majesty'' said The Rat``I began to work it outand 
think it must be true that night when we were with the old woman 
on the top of the mountain. It was the way she looked at--at His 
Highness.'' 
``Say `Marco' '' threw in Prince Ivor. ``It's easier. He was 
my armyFather.'' 
Stefan Loristan's grave eyes melted. 
``Say `Marco' '' he said. ``You were his army--and more--when 
we both needed one. It was you who invented the Game!'' 
``ThanksYour Majesty'' said The Ratreddening scarlet. ``You 
do me great honor! But he would never let me wait on him when we 
were traveling. He said we were nothing but two boys. I suppose 
that's why it's hard to rememberat first. But my mind went on 
working until sometimes I was afraid I might let something out at 
the wrong time. When we went down into the cavernand I saw the 
Forgers of the Sword go mad over him--I KNEW it must be true. 
But I didn't dare to speak. I knew you meant us to wait; so I 
waited.'' 
``You are a faithful friend'' said the King``and you have 
always obeyed orders!'' 
A great moon was sailing in the sky that night--just such a moon 
as had sailed among the torn rifts of storm clouds when the 
Prince at Vienna had come out upon the balcony and the boyish 
voice had startled him from the darkness of the garden below. 
The clearer light of this night's splendor drew them out on a 
balcony also--a broad balcony of white marble which looked like 
snow. The pure radiance fell upon all they saw spread before 
them--the lovely but half-ruined citythe great palace square 
with its broken statues and archesthe splendid ghost of the 
unroofed cathedral whose High Altar was bare to the sky. 
They stood and looked at it. There was a stillness in which all 
the world might have ceased breathing. 
``What next?'' said Prince Ivorat last speaking quietly and 
low. ``What nextFather?'' 
``Great things which will comeone by one'' said the King``if 
we hold ourselves ready.'' 
Prince Ivor turned his face from the lovelywhitebroken city
and put his brown hand on his father's arm. 
``Upon the ledge that night--'' he said``Fatheryou remember 
--?'' The King was looking far awaybut he bent his head: 
``Yes. That will cometoo'' he said. ``Can you repeat it?'' 
``Yes'' said Ivor``and so can the aide-de-camp. We've said it 
a hundred times. We believe it's true. `If the descendant of 
the Lost Prince is brought back to rule in Samaviahe will teach 
his people the Law of the Onefrom his throne. He will teach 
his sonand that son will teach his sonand he will teach his. 
And through such as thesethe whole world will learn the Order 
and the Law.' ''